Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n christian_a church_n tradition_n 2,130 5 9.0624 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27363 The Notes of the church as laid down by Cardinal Bellarmin examined and confuted : with a table of contents. Sherlock, William, 1641?-1707. 1688 (1688) Wing B1823; ESTC R32229 267,792 461

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

172._o the_o eight_o note_n sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n that_o this_o note_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o be_v far_o from_o perform_v what_o be_v promise_v for_o it_o by_o the_o cardinal_n be_v sufficient_o make_v evident_a by_o four_o particular_n p._n 173._o i._o what_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n p._n 174._o though_o that_o be_v the_o best_a and_o pure_a church_n which_o have_v the_o least_o of_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o its_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n yet_o that_o which_o be_v the_o best_a be_v not_o the_o only_a true_a church_n p._n 157._o ii_o that_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n i.e._n a_o pure_a profession_n of_o true_a religion_n without_o any_o mixture_n of_o error_n be_v no_o true_a note_n or_o character_n whereby_o a_o man_n may_v distinguish_v the_o true_a church_n from_o all_o false_a church_n p._n 176._o that_o this_o can_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n make_v evident_o appear_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o those_o necessary_a property_n of_o all_o true_a note_n by_o which_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v p._n 177._o these_o be_v four._n 1._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v p._n 177_o to_o 180._o 2._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o that_o kind_n of_o thing_n of_o which_o it_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o thing_n of_o another_o kind_n p._n 181._o 3._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v p._n 182_o 183._o 4._o every_o true_a note_n ought_v to_o be_v inseparable_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v p._n 184_o to_o 188._o iii_o in_o what_o sense_n this_o may_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n p._n 189._o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o profess_v all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o receive_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o christian_a worship_n and_o discipline_n p._n 190._o the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v to_o be_v try_v by_o this_o p._n 192._o iv_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v by_o this_o note_n in_o which_o soever_o of_o the_o two_o sense_n we_o understand_v it_o ibid._n this_o clear_o make_v out_o in_o four_o particular_n 1._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decrye_v man_n private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o utter_o insufficient_a to_o make_v any_o certain_a distinction_n of_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n p._n 194._o 2._o she_o allow_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n without_o the_o true_a church_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n p._n 195._o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n not_o to_o be_v resolve_v by_o principle_n of_o nature_n but_o those_o of_o revelation_n p._n 196._o no_o other_o rule_n while_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o this_o enquiry_n but_o only_o that_o of_o scripture_n ibid._n this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tell_v we_o be_v insufficient_a and_o that_o for_o two_o reason_n 1._o because_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o full_a enough_o as_o to_o all_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v certain_a unwritten_a tradition_n in_o the_o church_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o it_o by_o which_o its_o defect_n be_v supply_v p._n 197._o 2._o because_o it_o be_v not_o clear_a enough_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o be_v so_o obscure_o express_v that_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a what_o it_o be_v without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n p._n 198._o these_o consider_v and_o answer_v 3._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n resolve_v all_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o indeed_o be_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o popery_n p._n 199._o a_o short_a dialogue_n upon_o this_o argument_n between_o a_o papist_n and_o protestant_n p._n 200_o to_o 202._o 4._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v authority_n to_o the_o true_a church_n to_o impose_v upon_o we_o a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v such_o thing_n as_o before_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v p._n 203._o to_o the_o end._n the_o nine_o note_n efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n by_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n two_o thing_n understand_v either_o 1_o the_o power_n which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o particular_a man_n to_o dispose_v they_o to_o believe_v aright_o and_o to_o live_v well_o or_o 2_o that_o success_n which_o it_o have_v in_o draw_v multitude_n outward_o to_o profess_v and_o embrace_v it_o p._n 209._o the_o first_o too_o inward_a and_o the_o second_o which_o be_v that_o which_o the_o cardinal_n understand_v by_o it_o too_o uncertain_a a_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n ibid._n many_o other_o thing_n beside_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n which_o have_v and_o may_v convert_v whole_a nation_n to_o the_o christian_a religion_n such_o as_o hope_n and_o fear_n outward_a force_n &_o necessity_n p._n 210._o a_o instance_n hereof_o in_o the_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a p._n 211._o the_o difference_n between_o such_o conversion_n and_o those_o which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 212._o in_o answer_n to_o the_o cardinal_n upon_o this_o note_n three_o thing_n lay_v down_o i._o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 213._o this_o appear_v 1._o from_o what_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n ibid._n 214._o 2._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o mankind_n p._n 215._o to_o 217._o 3._o from_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact._n p._n 218_o 219._o error_n have_v such_o a_o influence_n often_o up_o n_o man_n mind_n that_o they_o have_v reject_v truth_n and_o prefer_v the_o most_o gross_a and_o impious_a opinion_n before_o it_o ibid._n this_o apparent_a from_o the_o history_n of_o all_o age_n ibid._n more_o particular_o in_o the_o case_n of_o arianism_n p._n 219._o and_o in_o that_o of_o mahomitanism_n p._n 220._o the_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o if_o the_o greek_a church_n who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n account_v hereti_n k_v p._n 221._o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n ibid._n ii_o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n p._n 222._o and_o that_o for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o of_o that_o great_a mixture_n of_o error_n which_o there_o be_v with_o the_o truth_n which_o it_o profess_v p._n 223._o 2._o because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o much_o alter_v from_o what_o it_o former_o be_v ibid._n 3._o because_o it_o hinder_v those_o who_o embrace_v it_o from_o thorough_o examine_v it_o p._n 224._o 4._o because_o art_n and_o force_n have_v sometime_o be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o make_v it_o prevail_v p._n 225._o iii_o the_o argument_n the_o cardinal_n make_v use_v of_o to_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n prove_v to_o be_v insufficient_a p._n 226._o 1._o his_o argument_n from_o the_o scripture_n consider_v ibid._n 2._o his_o argument_n from_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v p._n 227._o 3._o his_o argument_n from_o the_o particular_a instance_n which_o he_o give_v of_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n reflect_v on_o p._n 227._o i._o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o english_a by_o austin_n the_o monk_n consider_v p._n 228._o four_o thing_n allege_v in_o answer_n to_o it_o ibid._n 2._o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o people_n of_o franconia_n by_o kilianus_n reply_v to_o p._n 228_o 229._o 3._o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o germany_n by_o vinofrid_n otherwise_o call_v boniface_n consider_v ibid._n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o vandal_n of_o the_o dane_n of_o the_o bulgarian_n slavonian_n etc._n etc._n ascribe_v to_o other_o cause_n than_o the_o naked_a efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n ibid._n the_o barbarous_a cruelty_n that_o be_v use_v by_o the_o spaniard_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o indian_n p._n 230._o the_o instance_n of_o heraclius_n the_o emperor_n letter_n to_o dagobert_n king_n of_o france_n concern_v the_o method_n he_o make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n p._n 231._o the_o conclusion_n the_o ten_o note_n holiness_n of_o life_n in_o this_o argument_n it_o be_v show_v i._o what_o the_o notion_n of_o holiness_n be_v p._n 233._o holiness_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n 1._o holiness_n of_o call_v and_o dedication_n what_o
we_o return_v to_o our_o lord_n be_v original_a the_o evangelical_n beginning_n the_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o hence_o let_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o act_n arise_v from_o whence_o order_n and_o the_o beginning_n arise_v if_o therefore_o christ_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o regard_v what_o another_o before_o we_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v but_o what_o christ_n who_o be_v before_o all_o first_o do_v for_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o man_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n since_o god_n himself_o speak_v thus_o by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v the_o commandment_n and_o doctrine_n of_o men._n which_o very_a word_n our_o lord_n again_o repeat_v in_o the_o gospel_n you_o reject_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v establish_v your_o own_o tradition_n thus_o s._n cyprian_n oxon._n cyprian_n epist_n lxiii_o ad_fw-la caecilium_fw-la fratrem_fw-la &_o lxxiu_o add_v pompeium_n ed._n oxon._n with_o who_o tertullian_n 1._o tertullian_n l._n de_fw-fr veland_n virg._n c._n 1._o who_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v his_o master_n agree_v in_o many_o memorable_a say_n no_o body_n can_v prescribe_v against_o the_o truth_n neither_o space_n of_o time_n nor_o the_o patronage_n of_o person_n nor_o the_o privilege_n of_o country_n from_o which_o thing_n indeed_o custom_n have_v get_v a_o beginning_n by_o ignorance_n or_o simplicity_n and_o be_v grow_v strong_a by_o succession_n plead_v against_o truth_n but_o our_o lord_n christ_n call_v himself_o the_o truth_n not_o custom_n nor_o do_v novelty_n so_o much_o confute_v heresy_n as_o truth_n whatsoever_o be_v against_o truth_n that_o will_v be_v heresy_n even_o old_a custom_n truth_n do_v not_o stand_v xxviii_o stand_v l._n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la c._n xxviii_o in_o need_n of_o old_a custom_n to_o make_v it_o be_v believe_v nor_o do_v heresy_n fear_v the_o charge_n of_o novelty_n that_o which_o be_v plain_o false_a be_v make_v generous_a by_o antiquity_n for_o why_o shall_v i_o not_o call_v that_o false_a who_o proof_n be_v false_a why_o shall_v i_o believe_v pythagoras_n who_o tell_v lie_n that_o he_o may_v be_v believe_v i_o omit_v all_o the_o rest_n have_v say_v enough_o to_o show_v that_o if_o antiquity_n itself_o be_v to_o be_v credit_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o depend_v upon_o antiquity_n alone_o but_o seek_v for_o ancient_a truth_n which_o lead_v i_o to_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o undertake_v to_o show_v that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n vain_o pretend_v to_o true_a antiquity_n i.e._n to_o ancient_a truth_n ii_o the_o antiquity_n of_o a_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v seat_v for_o a_o new_a worship_n may_v come_v into_o a_o ancient_a place_n of_o worship_n as_o the_o new_a altar_n of_o ahaz_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o god_n of_o damascus_n 2_o king._n xuj_o 2_o chron._n xxviii_o 23_o nor_o do_v it_o consist_v mere_o in_o the_o antiquity_n of_o its_o founder_n for_o the_o apostle_n found_v many_o church_n which_o have_v all_o the_o same_o title_n to_o antiquity_n in_o this_o regard_n and_o yet_o continue_v not_o such_o church_n as_o they_o leave_v they_o but_o decay_a some_o of_o they_o so_o fast_o that_o what_o truth_n and_o goodness_n remain_v among_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v even_o before_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v dead_a rev._n three_o 2._o but_o it_o be_v true_a antiquity_n consist_v in_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o ancient_a truth_n entire_a and_o uncorrupted_a which_o it_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o which_o make_v it_o at_o first_o to_o be_v a_o church_n those_o thing_n be_v true_o ancient_a which_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o state_n after_o a_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n wherein_o they_o be_v at_o their_o beginning_n for_o if_o they_o have_v suffer_v any_o change_n in_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o their_o be_v and_o constitution_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o antiquity_n and_o become_v another_o thing_n than_o they_o be_v at_o the_o first_o now_o to_o know_v this_o we_o must_v inquire_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o understand_v for_o instance_n what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v a_o society_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god._n and_o all_o agree_v it_o be_v the_o christian_a truth_n in_o which_o if_o it_o have_v suffer_v alteration_n that_o be_v do_v not_o hold_v the_o same_o christian_a doctrine_n it_o do_v at_o the_o beginning_n but_o have_v introduce_v error_n and_o lie_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o ancient_a truth_n it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o church_n it_o be_v at_o first_o and_o therefore_o have_v not_o that_o mark_n of_o true_a antiquity_n which_o will_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v such_o as_o it_o pretend_v now_o that_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v evident_a by_o that_o alteration_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n unto_o which_o they_o have_v add_v as_o many_o more_o article_n as_o there_o be_v at_o the_o first_o and_o thereby_o make_v such_o a_o change_n in_o their_o church_n for_o a_o change_n be_v make_v by_o add_v as_o well_o as_o take_v away_o as_o make_v it_o not_o to_o be_v the_o same_o ancient_a church_n which_o the_o apostle_n found_v at_o the_o beginning_n this_o charge_n they_o have_v no_o way_n to_o avoid_v nor_o can_v by_o any_o other_o mean_v maintain_v that_o they_o be_v such_o a_o ancient_a church_n as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n settle_v but_o by_o this_o ratiocination_n as_o bellarmin_n call_v it_o that_o in_o all_o great_a change_n of_o religion_n these_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v ever_o show_v 1._o the_o author_n of_o that_o change._n 2._o the_o new_a doctrine_n that_o be_v bring_v in_o 3._o the_o time_n when_o it_o begin_v 4._o the_o place_n where_o 5._o who_o oppose_v it_o 6._o and_o who_o join_v themselves_o to_o it_o none_o of_o which_o can_v be_v show_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o therefore_o there_o have_v be_v no_o change_n at_o all_o make_v in_o it_o but_o it_o remain_v the_o same_o it_o be_v at_o first_o without_o any_o alteration_n which_o be_v a_o reason_v build_v upon_o ground_n so_o notorious_o false_a that_o it_o scarce_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o poor_a piece_n of_o sophistry_n 1._o for_o first_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o history_n and_o experience_n which_o show_v we_o there_o have_v be_v great_a change_n the_o author_n and_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o can_v now_o be_v know_v though_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v there_o have_v be_v a_o alteration_n make_v for_o the_o body_n spiritual_a and_o civil_a too_o be_v like_o the_o body_n natural_a in_o which_o as_o there_o be_v some_o disease_n which_o make_v such_o a_o violent_a and_o sudden_a assault_n that_o one_o may_v say_v at_o what_o moment_n they_o begin_v so_o there_o be_v other_o which_o grow_v so_o insensible_o and_o by_o such_o slow_a degree_n that_o none_o can_v tell_v when_o the_o first_o alteration_n be_v make_v and_o by_o what_o accident_n from_o a_o good_a habit_n of_o body_n to_o a_o bad_a thus_o we_o be_v sure_o a_o man_n be_v in_o a_o deep_a consumption_n when_o we_o see_v he_o wear_v away_o to_o skin_n and_o bone_n though_o no_o body_n can_v tell_v the_o precise_a time_n when_o nor_o by_o what_o mean_n nor_o where_o and_o in_o what_o company_n his_o blood_n begin_v to_o be_v taint_v and_o thus_o we_o be_v sure_o there_o be_v a_o gangrene_n as_o st_n paul_n call_v heresy_n when_o we_o see_v it_o corrode_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n though_o it_o creep_v in_o so_o secret_o at_o the_o first_o and_o so_o indiscernable_o that_o it_o be_v not_o suspect_v nor_o can_v always_o be_v trace_v to_o its_o first_o occasion_n and_o original_a no_o the_o tare_n in_o the_o field_n which_o be_v another_o example_n whereby_o our_o lord_n himself_o illustrate_v this_o matter_n have_v take_v root_n before_o they_o be_v espy_v for_o they_o be_v sow_o in_o the_o night_n while_o man_n sleep_v and_o can_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o so_o that_o all_o that_o can_v be_v know_v be_v this_o that_o his_o enemy_n have_v do_v it_o that_o be_v the_o tare_n be_v not_o from_o our_o saviour_n nor_o be_v first_o sow_o but_o be_v of_o a_o late_a and_o quite_o different_a original_a but_o by_o what_o particular_a instrument_n the_o enemy_n sow_v they_o at_o what_o hour_n of_o the_o night_n by_o what_o hand_n and_o when_o do_v not_o appear_v for_o the_o matter_n be_v carry_v so_o secret_o and_o in_o the_o dark_a that_o the_o servant_n who_o know_v of_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o good_a seed_n in_o the_o field_n wonder_v to_o see_v the_o bad_a and_o ask_v
venture_v their_o cause_n to_o any_o other_o sentence_n but_o that_o of_o scripture_n which_o have_v so_o plain_o decide_v for_o they_o and_o be_v indeed_o the_o most_o proper_a to_o be_v appeal_v to_o yet_o the_o great_a number_n and_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o protestant_a writer_n have_v never_o decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o next_o to_o the_o inspire_a write_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v always_o esteem_v and_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v determine_v by_o it_o and_o we_o be_v well_o assure_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n even_o the_o roman_n itself_o as_o well_o as_o the_o whole_a christian_a beside_o be_v in_o all_o material_a point_n on_o the_o protestant_a side_n and_o a_o perfect_a stranger_n if_o not_o a_o utter_a enemy_n to_o those_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v since_o bring_v into_o the_o western_a church_n and_o which_o we_o have_v for_o that_o reason_n protest_v against_o because_o they_o be_v unknown_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o will_v too_o much_o exceed_v the_o set_v limit_n of_o this_o paper_n to_o make_v this_o out_o so_o full_o as_o may_v easy_o be_v do_v by_o go_v through_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o note_n go_v whole_o off_o from_o it_o and_o choose_v rather_o to_o pursue_v luther_n and_o calvin_n and_o some_o other_o worthy_a reformer_n through_o all_o the_o path_n of_o calumny_n and_o slander_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o follow_v he_o to_o take_v he_o off_o from_o those_o false_a and_o injurious_a representation_n he_o have_v make_v of_o their_o doctrine_n if_o any_o body_n have_v the_o curiosity_n to_o see_v the_o art_n of_o misrepresent_v in_o its_o great_a perfection_n let_v he_o but_o read_v that_o chapter_n but_o if_o he_o will_v see_v it_o as_o perfect_o shame_v and_o expose_v let_v he_o read_v bishop_n morton_n long_a and_o learned_a answer_n to_o it_o 278._o it_o apologia_fw-la catholica_fw-la p._n 61._o to_o p._n 278._o we_o be_v examine_v the_o doctrine_n and_o find_v out_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o of_o particular_a man_n and_o have_v calvin_n or_o other_o teach_v any_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v very_o false_o there_o lay_v to_o their_o charge_n i_o know_v none_o have_v be_v concern_v in_o they_o but_o themselves_o and_o no_o church_n can_v have_v be_v prejudice_v by_o they_o any_o far_a than_o it_o have_v receive_v they_o i_o shall_v therefore_o keep_v more_o close_o to_o bellarmine_n note_n though_o not_o to_o his_o method_n upon_o it_o and_o i_o assure_v a_o late_a adviser_n bel●●mine_fw-la adviser_n advice_n to_o the_o confuter_n of_o bel●●mine_fw-la it_o be_v not_o the_o design_n of_o confute_v he_o but_o set_v man_n right_a in_o the_o way_n to_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o true_a church_n when_o other_o be_v so_o busy_a to_o draw_v they_o off_o by_o false_a mark_n and_o pretence_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o undertake_n i_o confess_v it_o will_v be_v too_o prolix_a as_o bellarmine_n say_v to_o produce_v all_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n thereby_o to_o show_v what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o every_o particular_a point_n controvert_v between_o we_o i_o shall_v therefore_o offer_v only_o some_o plain_a and_o brief_a remark_n by_o which_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n may_v be_v undeniable_o know_v in_o most_o of_o the_o controversy_n and_o by_o which_o it_o will_v appear_v what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n then_o and_o how_o contrary_a that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v now_o to_o it_o and_o here_o i_o shall_v first_o begin_v with_o the_o most_o primitive_a that_o be_v with_o the_o apostolic_a church_n which_o true_o and_o only_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o be_v mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v as_o vain_a as_o arrogant_a for_o any_o late_a and_o particular_a church_n to_o assume_v that_o to_o itself_o which_o be_v but_o a_o sister-church_n at_o most_o and_o young_a than_o some_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o though_o more_o fine_a and_o proud_a yet_o not_o half_a so_o honest_a and_o uncorrupt_a this_o apostolic_a church_n which_o be_v found_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o true_a standard_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o as_o in_o reveal_v religion_n that_o which_o be_v first_o be_v true_a according_a to_o tertullian_n 4._o tertullian_n id_fw-la verum_fw-la quod_fw-la prius_fw-la id_fw-la prius_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n tertul._n de_fw-fr prescript_n l._n 4._o axiom_n because_o it_o come_v near_a to_o the_o first_o pure_a fountain_n of_o revelation_n so_o as_o he_o add_v that_o be_v first_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o from_o the_o apostle_n we_o shall_v first_o then_o examine_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n the_o great_a an_o almost_o only_a account_n of_o which_o we_o have_v in_o their_o own_o canonical_a write_n which_o be_v receive_v and_o allow_v as_o such_o by_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n and_o in_o these_o our_o adversary_n find_v so_o little_a of_o their_o own_o late_a and_o new_a doctrine_n that_o they_o can_v but_o own_o that_o these_o be_v insufficient_a to_o authorise_v and_o establish_v most_o of_o they_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o without_o the_o help_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n when_o we_o produce_v scripture_n against_o our_o adversary_n we_o then_o produce_v the_o only_a authentic_a record_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o only_a certain_a account_n we_o have_v of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o most_o primitive_a church_n let_v they_o object_v therefore_o never_o so_o much_o against_o scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o whilst_o it_o contain_v the_o only_a sure_a testimony_n of_o what_o be_v teach_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o first_o christian_a church_n so_o far_o as_o any_o of_o these_o doctrine_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n so_o far_o they_o can_v appear_v to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o whilst_o we_o hold_v all_o that_o faith_n and_o all_o those_o doctrine_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n we_o hold_v all_o that_o can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o in_o the_o most_o pure_a and_o most_o primitive_a church_n and_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v add_v to_o scripture_n which_o they_o will_v needs_o have_v to_o be_v but_o a_o imperfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v add_v so_o far_o as_o can_v be_v know_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n for_o if_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o that_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o only_a historical_a account_n we_o have_v of_o it_o but_o i_o shall_v not_o at_o present_a deal_n with_o they_o out_o of_o scripture_n though_o as_o it_o be_v only_o a_o record_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o apostolical_a faith_n they_o will_v count_v this_o but_o a_o trick_n i_o know_v to_o draw_v they_o into_o a_o scripture_n dispute_v which_o they_o be_v mighty_a averse_a to_o and_o which_o they_o design_v to_o avoid_v by_o a_o appeal_n from_o that_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n we_o will_v go_v on_o therefore_o with_o our_o note_n as_o they_o i_o suppose_v mean_v and_o understand_v it_o and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v too_o troublesome_a to_o they_o with_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostolic_a write_n we_o will_v go_v several_a age_n low_a even_o down_o to_o those_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n be_v in_o its_o glorious_a state_n under_o the_o first_o christian_n emperor_n and_o whether_o their_o doctrine_n or_o we_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o those_o of_o this_o primitive_a church_n let_v we_o now_o come_v brief_o to_o inquire_v in_o some_o particular_a instance_n and_o by_o some_o few_o short_a remark_n and_o observation_n and_o first_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o their_o pretend_a supremacy_n then_o allow_v of_o when_o in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n at_o nice_a 6._o nice_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d conc._n nicen._n can._n 6._o there_o be_v a_o limit_a power_n assign_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o there_o be_v to_o the_o other_o metropolitan_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n who_o be_v to_o keep_v their_o bound_n set_v they_o by_o ancient_a custom_n which_o be_v utter_o inconsistent_a with_o a_o universal_a supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o a_o divine_a right_n as_o be_v since_o pretend_a and_o claim_v contrary_a to_o all_o antiquity_n for_o the_o next_o general_n council_n appoint_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o have_v prerogative_n of_o honour_n
the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o lay_v down_o by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n examine_v and_o confute_v with_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 6._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n london_n print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n mdclxxxviii_o the_o several_a tract_n contain_v in_o this_o volume_n 1._o a_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n with_o some_o reflection_n on_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n 2._o a_o examination_n of_o note_n concern_v bellarmin_n first_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n 3._o his_o second_o note_n antiquity_n 4._o his_o third_z note_n duration_n 5._o his_o four_o note_n amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n 6._o his_o fifth_z note_n the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n 7._o his_o sixth_z note_n agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n 8._o his_o seven_o note_n union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n 9_o his_o eight_o note_n sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n 10._o his_o nine_o note_n efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n 11._o his_o ten_o note_n holiness_n of_o life_n 12._o his_o eleven_o note_n the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n 13._o his_o twelve_o note_n the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n 14._o his_o thirteen_o note_n confession_n of_o adversary_n 15._o his_o fourteen_o note_n the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n 16._o his_o fifteen_o note_n temporal_a felicity_n 17._o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v the_o use_n and_o great_a moment_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o deliver_v by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n the_o notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la justify_v 18._o a_o defence_n of_o the_o confuter_n of_o bellarmin_n second_o note_n of_o the_o church_n antiquity_n against_o the_o cavil_n of_o the_o adviser_n 19_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n the_o content_n of_o the_o follow_a note_n the_o introduction_n to_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o visibility_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n take_v away_o the_o necessity_n of_o find_v out_o note_n to_o distinguish_v it_o by_o especial_o of_o such_o note_n as_o be_v matter_n of_o dispute_v themselves_o p._n 3._o the_o use_n of_o note_n of_o find_v out_o a_o infallible_a church_n and_o these_o appropriate_v by_o the_o cardinal_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o p._n 4._o what_o protestant_n intend_v in_o those_o note_n they_o give_v of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o what_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o note_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 5._o the_o protestant_a way_n of_o find_v out_o the_o church_n by_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 6._o three_o thing_n object_v to_o this_o by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o answer_v return_v p._n 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o the_o cardinal_n way_n consider_v and_o examine_v one_a to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v p._n 13._o two_o inquiry_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o and_o what_o it_o be_v ibid._n no_o note_n of_o these_o but_o such_o as_o they_o dare_v not_o give_v viz._n the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o every_o man_n be_v private_a judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o they_o p._n 14._o 2_o she_o give_v we_o note_n whereby_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v p._n 15._o impossible_a to_o know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v ibid._n no_o other_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n and_o that_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o what_o all_o church_n do_v agree_v in_o viz_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n p._n 16._o the_o 6_o which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o second_o and_o the_o 8_o be_v the_o chief_a if_o not_o the_o only_a note_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o here_o our_o claim_n be_v as_o good_a if_o not_o better_a than_o they_o ibid._n his_o 9th_o 10_o 11_o and_o 12_o not_o proper_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o be_v testimony_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n which_o be_v profess_v by_o all_o true_a church_n ibid._n the_o 13_o 14_o 15_o no_o note_n at_o all_o because_o they_o be_v not_o always_o true_a ibid._n his_o 3d_o and_o four_o note_n be_v not_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o only_o god_n promise_n make_v to_o his_o church_n p._n 17._o his_o one_a note_n do_v not_o declare_v what_o a_o church_n be_v but_o in_o what_o communion_n it_o be_v and_o be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v frr_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v true_a church_n which_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o each_o other_o ibid._n his_o 5_o common_a to_o the_o greek_a and_o any_o other_o church_n who_o have_v bishop_n in_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a bishop_n p._n 18._o the_o seven_o note_n serve_v to_o purpose_v the_o cardinal_n design_n and_o do_v his_o business_n without_o any_o other_o note_n ibid._n 3_o another_o mystery_n in_o form_v these_o note_n be_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n one_o church_n which_o we_o must_v own_v for_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o reject_v all_o other_o as_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a or_o vncatholick_a church_n who_o refuse_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o this_o one_o catholic_n church_n p._n 19_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o signify_v all_o the_o particular_a true_a church_n but_o some_o one_o church_n which_o all_o other_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o and_o communicate_v with_o if_o they_o will_v be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v before_o the_o cardinal_n have_v give_v we_o these_o note_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 20_o 21._o 4thly_a another_o design_n in_o make_v these_o note_n be_v to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n on_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v rely_v for_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n even_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o p._n 22._o but_o here_o we_o must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v infallible_a this_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v but_o by_o scripture_n which_o a_o man_n must_v first_o believe_v before_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a church_n p._n 23._o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o first_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o religion_n since_o we_o ought_v to_o know_v and_o believe_v most_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n or_o no._n p._n 23_o 24._o the_o content_n of_o the_o first_o note_n catholic_n the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a sure_a and_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n p._n 25._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decline_v be_v examine_v by_o this_o rule_n p._n 26._o bellarmin_n argument_n for_o the_o name_n catholic_n be_v a_o undoubted_a true_a mark_n of_o a_o true_a church_n p._n 26._o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o cardinal_n argument_n expose_v in_o three_o particular_n i._o in_o what_o respect_n the_o name_n catholic_n be_v esteem_v by_o some_o of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o time_n a_o note_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o will_v ever_o be_v a_o stand_a note_n of_o it_o p._n 27._o this_o show_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o therefore_o in_o their_o time_n be_v join_v with_o the_o word_n catholic_n p._n 28._o what_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o why_o call_v catholic_n ibid._n none_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n go_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n but_o those_o who_o profess_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith._n p._n 29._o ii_o no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o catholic_n to_o prove_v a_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_n p._n 29._o i._o the_o christian_a church_n be_v not_o know_v by_o the_o name_n catholic_n at_o the_o beginning_n though_o of_o a_o ancient_a and_o early_a date_n and_o therefore_o no_o essential_a note_n of_o it_o p._n 30._o 2._o name_n be_v oft_o time_n arbitrary_a and_o at_o random_n and_o false_o impose_v on_o thing_n and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o they_o ibid._n 3._o name_n be_v oft_o time_n impose_v on_o
thing_n as_o mark_n of_o distinction_n only_o without_o any_o further_a design_n of_o lessen_v their_o nature_n and_o quality_n by_o they_o p._n 31._o 4._o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o name_n catholic_n in_o that_o time_n when_o it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n conjoin_v with_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v a_o sure_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o must_v always_o be_v so_o even_o when_o the_o name_n and_o the_o thing_n be_v part_v p._n 32._o the_o worst_a of_o heretic_n lay_v claim_v to_o it_o p._n 33._o the_o rule_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n by_o prove_v from_o lactantius_n and_o st._n austin_n ibid._n 5._o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o particular_a man_n in_o that_o age_n when_o all_o so_o call_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n corrupt_v in_o the_o faith_n be_v a_o sure_a hand_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n that_o it_o must_v always_o be_v so_o p._n 33_o 34._o iii_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v egregious_o corrupt_v the_o catholic_n faith_n or_o religion_n neither_o be_v nor_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n p._n 34._o this_o justify_v by_o compare_v her_o doctrine_n in_o several_a point_n with_o that_o deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n p._n 35._o for_o instance_n that_o angel_n and_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o and_o worship_v this_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n ibid._n the_o worship_v of_o image_n contrary_a to_o the_o second_o commandment_n which_o they_o make_v the_o same_o with_o the_o first_o p._n 36._o the_o scripture_n command_v all_o person_n indifferent_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v not_o this_o liberty_n to_o the_o laity_n but_o upon_o licence_n ibid._n the_o scripture_n forbid_v prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enjoin_v such_o and_o no_o other_o p._n 37._o purgatory_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n ibid._n the_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a instistitution_n of_o our_o saviour_n p._n 38._o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n even_o after_o consecration_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n p._n 39_o the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n derogatory_n to_o christ_n own_o priestly_a oblation_n whereby_o he_o once_o offer_v himself_o a_o complete_a sacrifice_n of_o expiation_n p._n 40._o in_o all_o these_o particular_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o corrupter_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n ibid._n the_o second_o note_n antiquity_n this_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alone_o nor_o in_o truth_n do_v it_o belong_v to_o it_o to_o prove_v this_o three_o thing_n be_v here_o offer_v i._o that_o the_o plea_n of_o bare_a antiquity_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n but_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o society_n of_o false_a religion_n p._n 41._o the_o note_n of_o a_o thing_n must_v be_v proper_a to_o that_o of_o which_o they_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o thing_n p._n 42._o 1._o because_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o a_o thing_n be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o and_o do_v ever_o belong_v to_o it_o since_o it_o have_v a_o be_v and_o can_v at_o no_o time_n be_v absent_a from_o it_o ibid._n 2._o other_o society_n have_v lay_v claim_n to_o this_o note_n and_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v they_o and_o therefore_o no_o proper_a note_n of_o a_o church_n ibid._n this_o show_v that_o bare_a antiquity_n can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o truth_n p._n 44._o antiquity_n and_o priority_n wide_o different_a p._n 45._o a_o twofold_a antiquity_n one_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o the_o other_o absolute_a and_o in_o itself_o ibid._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o be_v try_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o true_a antiquity_n p._n 46._o error_n almost_o as_o ancient_a as_o truth_n for_o which_o reason_n several_a wicked_a doctrine_n run_v down_o to_o posterity_n have_v make_v use_n of_o the_o plea_n of_o antiquity_n to_o give_v they_o countenance_n and_o support_v p._n 47._o ii_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n vain_o pretend_v to_o true_a antiquity_n i.e._n to_o ancient_a truth_n p._n 48._o wherein_o true_a antiquity_n do_v consist_v ibid._n the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n not_o ancient_a by_o reason_n of_o that_o alteration_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n p._n 49._o cardinal_n bellarmin_n ratiocination_n against_o this_o charge_n consist_v of_o 6_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o change_n of_o religion_n none_o of_o which_o he_o say_v can_v be_v show_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n ibid._n his_o reason_v build_v upon_o very_o false_a ground_n this_o consider_v and_o large_o answer_v in_o four_o particular_n p._n 50._o 1._o as_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o history_n and_o experience_n there_o have_v be_v great_a change_n in_o religion_n the_o author_n and_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o can_v be_v know_v p._n 50._o 2._o neither_o do_v the_o example_n they_o allege_v for_o this_o their_o reason_n serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o show_v the_o falseness_n of_o it_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o nestorian_a and_o arrian_n heresy_n p._n 51._o 3._o suppose_v they_o true_a they_o will_v uphold_v the_o great_a impiety_n ibid._n the_o heathen_a god_n and_o their_o oracle_n support_v by_o this_o argument_n p._n 52._o 4._o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o a_o instance_n of_o this_o there_o be_v a_o acknowledge_a change_n in_o it_o and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o first_o begin_v it_o viz._n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n ibid._n two_o instance_n out_o of_o polydore_n virgil_n when_o and_o by_o who_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 53._o 1._o their_o grand_a article_n of_o faith_n the_o papal_a authority_n bring_v in_o by_o victor_n and_o carry_v on_o by_o the_o follow_a bishop_n ibid._n the_o present_a definition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o depose_v king_n not_o challenge_v till_o gregory_n vii_o i.e._n 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n ibid._n 2._o it_o be_v know_v when_o image_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n p._n 55._o a_o little_a more_o than_o 100_o year_n since_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v decree_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n i._n e._n of_o the_o word_n of_o god._n ibid._n iii_o that_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o law_n establish_v be_v the_o true_a primitive_a christianity_n p._n 56._o the_o three_o note_n duration_n three_o thing_n be_v here_o consider_v i._o what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o term_n duration_n p._n 58._o duration_n include_v 3_o thing_n 1._o a_o be_v of_o a_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n p._n 58_o 2._o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o church_n to_o the_o end_n p._n 58_o 3._o the_o continuance_n of_o that_o church_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n without_o interruption_n p._n 58_o bellarmine_n application_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o deficient_a in_o the_o latter_a branch_n p._n 59_o ii_o how_o far_o duration_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n p._n 59_o this_o be_v no_o note_n by_o which_o a_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v find_v out_o or_o distinguish_v from_o the_o false_a ib._n for_o four_o reason_n 1._o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n will_v not_o permit_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o note_n p._n 60._o 2._o that_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o inseparable_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o season_n and_o case_n p._n 61._o 3._o that_o which_o be_v a_o note_n must_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v the_o note_n of_o and_o not_o common_a to_o other_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o that_o p._n 61_o 62._o common_a to_o false_a church_n as_o well_o as_o true_a ibid._n 4._o if_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n than_o those_o can_v not_o be_v true_a church_n which_o have_v not_o not_o have_v that_o duration_n ib._n this_o unchurche_n the_o 7_o church_n of_o asia_n p._n 62_o 63._o iii_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o just_a and_o sufficient_a title_n to_o this_o character_n p._n 63._o this_o prove_v as_o to_o 1._o place_v 2._o person_n 3._o order_n 4._o doctrine_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n by_o which_o a_o church_n do_v exist_v and_o be_v make_v
visible_a p._n 63_o 64._o rome_n not_o always_o the_o principal_a seat_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 63._o avignon_n be_v for_o 70_o year_n where_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o whole_a court_n reside_v ibid._n several_a pope_n heretic_n p._n 64._o two_o pope_n at_o once_o contend_v for_o the_o chair_n and_o this_o for_o above_o 40_o year_n together_o and_o at_o one_o time_n 3_o pope_n p._n 64._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n compare_v with_o itself_o in_o reference_n to_o several_a doctrine_n p._n 65._o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o hold_v and_o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v hold_v ibid._n her_o be_v the_o mother-church_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n ibid._n concern_v the_o apocryphal_a book_n ibid._n scripture_n and_o tradition_n p._n 66._o scripture_n in_o unknown_a tongue_n ibid._n merit_n p._n 67._o indulgence_n ibid._n purgatory_n p._n 68_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n ibid._n pray_v to_o saint_n p._n 68_o 69._o image-worship_n p._n 69._o sacrament_n the_o number_n of_o they_o ibid._n transubstantiation_n p._n 70._o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n ibid._n solitary_n mass_n p._n 70_o 71._o auricular_a confession_n p._n 71._o extreme_a unction_n ibid._n priest_n marriage_n ibid._n in_o all_o these_o particular_n room_n be_v not_o now_o what_o it_o have_v be_v the_o four_o note_n amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n the_o scripture_n first_o give_v we_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 73._o a_o true_a christian_a church_n profess_v the_o true_a christian_n faith._n p._n 74._o instead_o of_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v invent_v several_a note_n and_o character_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o or_o be_v not_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n ibid._n of_o which_o this_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n etc._n etc._n be_v one_o ibid._n what_o bellarmine_n understand_v by_o this_o note_n p._n 75._o in_o answer_n to_o he_o i._o it_o be_v show_v this_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n ibid._n 1_o whether_o you_o consider_v the_o member_n thereof_o under_o either_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n or_o 2._o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o believer_n ibid._n satan_n kingdom_n more_o numerous_a than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ._n ibid._n the_o worshipper_n of_o mahomet_n exceed_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n in_o number_n since_o the_o romanist_n make_v themselves_o the_o only_a catholic_n p._n 76._o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n by_o this_o note_n ibid._n this_o note_n therefore_o no_o true_a character_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 77._o the_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n whence_o bellarmine_n pretend_v he_o fetch_v this_o note_n of_o he_o ibid._n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o variable_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o p._n 78._o this_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o in_o his_o explication_n of_o this_o note_n ibid._n the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o it_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n p._n 79._o many_o plain_a prophecy_n bring_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o ibid._n the_o cardinal_n citation_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n for_o the_o confirm_v this_o note_n consider_v p._n 80_o 81._o ii_o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o do_v not_o advantage_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o that_o her_o pretention_n of_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n ibid._n 82_o to_o 85._o iii_o suppose_v again_o this_o note_n to_o be_v true_a it_o do_v the_o reform_a church_n a_o very_a great_a service_n in_o demonstrate_v they_o to_o be_v true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n p._n 85._o this_o demonstrate_v by_o two_o argument_n p._n 86_o 87._o 1._o that_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n the_o catholic_n church_n then_o be_v more_o we_o than_o now_o it_o be_v the_o romanist_n p._n 86._o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a agreement_n between_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n ibid._n this_o be_v evident_a by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n of_o each_o together_o ibid._n 2._o that_o upon_o computation_n the_o church_n subject_n to_o the_o roman_a see_v exceed_v not_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n of_o member_n p._n 87_o to_o 91._o the_o conclusion_n p._n 92._o the_o five_o note_n succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o examination_n of_o this_o note_n three_o thing_n be_v inquire_v into_o i._o how_o far_o this_o note_n may_v be_v necessary_a to_o any_o church_n p._n 94._o true_a and_o lawful_a pastor_n necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o pastoral_a power_n original_o from_o christ_n ibid._n power_n of_o ordination_n entrust_v with_o bishop_n the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ordinary_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n p._n 94_o 95._o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o bishop_n and_o its_o succession_n not_o interrupt_v in_o the_o reformation_n ibid._n 1._o obs_n though_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o complete_a constitution_n of_o a_o church_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v indispensable_a to_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o so_o as_o to_o unchurch_n every_o place_n that_o want_v these_o 2._o obs_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o every_o church_n which_o firm_o presume_v upon_o this_o lawful_a and_o orderly_a succession_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v the_o record_n of_o its_o conveyance_n through_o every_o age_n and_o in_o every_o single_a person_n by_o who_o it_o have_v past_a p._n 95._o the_o ancient_n content_v themselves_o in_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o great_a see_v and_o mother-city_n as_o of_o rome_n alexandria_n antioch_n jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n ibid._n 3._o obs_n some_o irregularity_n and_o uncanonical_a proceed_n in_o time_n of_o great_a schism_n or_o public_a disturbance_n have_v be_v interpret_v for_o no_o interruption_n of_o this_o authentical_a succession_n p._n 97._o ii_o how_o far_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 98._o little_o leave_v upon_o record_n of_o many_o of_o the_o first_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_v their_o bare_a name_n ibid._n if_o heresy_n break_v the_o succession_n this_o be_v chargeable_a upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 99_o if_o schismatical_a intrusion_n can_v dissolve_v the_o order_n of_o succession_n this_o chargeable_a likewise_o on_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n viz._n felix_n the_o 2._o and_o vigilius_n ibid._n 1._o the_o case_n of_o the_o roman_a succession_n extreme_o change_v since_o the_o first_o time_n p._n 101._o no_o supremacy_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o more_o than_o the_o first_o 500_o year_n p._n 101_o 102._o 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o very_o favourable_a to_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n ibid._n the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n dispute_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n ibid._n 3._o their_o catechism_n make_v this_o no_o distinct_a order_n but_o only_o a_o different_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n p._n 103._o iii_o how_o insufficient_a a_o proof_n this_o will_v afford_v they_o of_o any_o great_a advantage_n ibid._n 1._o succession_n be_v no_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n p._n 104_o 105._o 2._o a_o unintterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v no_o warrantable_a ground_n of_o the_o claim_n of_o superiority_n over_o another_o church_n which_o have_v not_o so_o clear_a evidence_n thereof_o p._n 105_o 106._o the_o cardinal_n testimony_n out_o of_o st._n augustine_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o epiphanius_n examine_v p._n 107_o 108._o his_o inference_n from_o these_o citation_n about_o succession_n consider_v p._n 109_o 110._o the_o conclusion_n the_o six_o note_n agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v acknowledge_v a_o true_a mark_n of_o a_o church_n p._n 113._o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v aside_o till_o it_o be_v first_o know_v whether_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o not_o p._n 114._o the_o true_a church_n only_o to_o be_v discover_v by_o the_o true_a faith._n p._n 115._o those_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n p._n 116._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wave_v particular_a controversy_n that_o may_v be_v make_v plain_a and_o evident_a to_o most_o capacity_n delight_n rather_o to_o run_v out_o into_o general_a controversy_n
of_o infallibility_n church-authority_n and_o resolution_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n etc._n etc._n p._n 119._o the_o reformation_n never_o do_v decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o its_o justification_n p._n 120_o 121._o luther_n and_o calvin_n misrepresent_v by_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n p._n 122._o the_o apostolic_a church_n found_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o true_a standard_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n ibid._n the_o scripture_n the_o only_a authentic_a record_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o the_o only_a certain_a account_n we_o have_v of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o most_o primitive_a church_n p._n 123._o several_a doctrine_n examine_v by_o antiquity_n 1._o supremacy_n not_o allow_v of_o by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o that_o of_o constantinople_n nor_o chalcedon_n p._n 125._o 2._o transubstantiation_n acknowledge_v by_o many_o of_o the_o schoolman_n not_o to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n this_o doctrine_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n a_o little_a before_o berengarius_fw-la and_o not_o thorough_o understand_v even_o then_o by_o those_o who_o hold_v it_o p._n 126._o berengarius_fw-la his_o recantation_n and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o it_o p._n 127._o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n not_o declare_v to_o be_v seven_o by_o the_o primitive_a church_n nor_o mention_v by_o any_o author_n till_o 1100_o year_n after_o christ_n ibid._n necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n question_v by_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o peter_n lombard_n p._n 128._o purgatory_n not_o mention_v by_o any_o ancient_a writer_n p._n 128_o 129._o indulgence_n receive_v very_o late_o into_o the_o church_n ibid._n prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a a_o ancient_a practice_n but_o no_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n never_o the_o practice_n any_o where_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ib._n worship_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n and_o of_o image_n of_o no_o ancient_a date_n in_o the_o church_n ibid._n all_o these_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o reform_a that_o they_o be_v not_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v further_a prove_v 1._o from_o their_o expurgatory_n indices_fw-la p._n 130._o 2._o from_o the_o correct_a or_o rather_o corrupt_v the_o father_n and_o the_o counterfeit_n so_o many_o false_a one_o and_o obtrude_a spurious_a author_n upon_o the_o world._n p._n 131_o 132._o 3._o from_o that_o little_a esteem_n and_o regard_n they_o too_o often_o have_v for_o antiquity_n when_o ever_o it_o make_v against_o they_o p._n 133._o 4._o from_o the_o determination_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n they_o stick_v to_o and_o which_o they_o prefer_v a_o thousand_o time_n before_o antiquity_n or_o the_o whole_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o seven_o note_n the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n unity_n no_o proper_a character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n because_o find_v upon_o society_n of_o different_a nature_n and_o contrary_a design_n p._n 137._o it_o be_v a_o good_a mark_n when_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n when_o the_o term_n of_o union_n be_v so_o ibid._n wherein_o this_o unity_n consist_v according_a to_o bellarmine_n p._n 138._o hereupon_o three_o thing_n be_v endeavour_v 1._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n forasmuch_o as_o union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o foundation_n in_o scripture_n reason_n or_o antiquity_n p._n 140._o 1._o scripture_n p._n 141_o 142_o 143._o 2._o no_o foundation_n of_o it_o from_o reason_n p._n 144_o 145._o 3._o nor_o any_o colour_n from_o antiquity_n p._n 145_o to_o 149._o the_o cardinal_n argument_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o union_n from_o experience_n consider_v p._n 149._o 2._o the_o union_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o among_o themselves_o as_o member_n no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 150._o 1._o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o any_o society_n may_v have_v as_o well_o as_o the_o true_a church_n and_o any_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a p._n 151._o 2._o as_o there_o may_v be_v this_o union_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n so_o its_o may_v not_o be_v within_o it_o ibid._n ii_o if_o unity_n be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o which_o be_v probable_o true_a of_o the_o first_o and_o most_o certain_o true_a of_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o cardinal_n unity_n p._n 152._o 1._o it_o be_v probable_a that_o there_o be_v not_o now_o nor_o have_v be_v for_o many_o age_n any_o true_a pope_n for_o the_o church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o ibid._n 2._o neither_o be_v there_o that_o union_n in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n among_o the_o papist_n or_o such_o a_o union_n of_o their_o member_n as_o shall_v prevent_v the_o break_n away_o of_o some_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o rest_n p._n 153._o not_o that_o wonderful_a agreement_n as_o the_o cardinal_n pretend_v in_o the_o sacred_a writer_n of_o their_o church_n nor_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o lawful_a council_n nor_o in_o those_o of_o their_o pope_n p._n 154._o several_a dispute_n between_o the_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n in_o many_o material_a point_n of_o doctrine_n between_o the_o thomist_n the_o scotist_n and_o occamist_n between_o the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o jansenist_n and_o molinist_n p._n 155_o 156._o bellarmin_n answer_n to_o all_o this_o viz._n they_o differ_v not_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o faith_n consider_v p._n 156_o 157._o the_o cardinal_n difference_n between_o the_o division_n of_o heretic_n from_o the_o church_n and_o a_o division_n from_o heresy_n consider_v p._n 158._o if_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o certain_a rule_n for_o end_v controversy_n viz._n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o a_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n ibid._n 1._o why_o be_v not_o these_o the_o mean_n of_o compose_v those_o controversy_n that_o carry_v we_o away_o from_o they_o ibid._n 2._o how_o can_v those_o be_v certain_a mean_n of_o compose_v controversy_n concern_v which_o even_o in_o their_o own_o church_n there_o be_v the_o great_a controversy_n of_o all_o p._n 159._o this_o large_o show_v from_o the_o learned_a launoy_n epistle_n to_o nicholas_n gatinaeus_fw-la upon_o this_o question_n p._n 160_o 161_o 162_o 163._o iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o protestant_n have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o p._n 164._o the_o true_a ground_n and_o notion_n of_o church-vnity_n represent_v ibid._n 1._o unity_n of_o submission_n to_o one_o head_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ibid._n 2._o unity_n of_o profess_v the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o to_o the_o saint_n ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o summary_o expound_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n p._n 165._o 3._o unity_n of_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n ibid._n 4._o unity_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o institution_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n p._n 165._o 5._o unity_n of_o christian_a affection_n and_o brotherly_a kindness_n ibid._n 6._o unity_n of_o discipline_n and_o government_n ibid._n 7._o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god._n p._n 166._o some_o though_o not_o all_o of_o these_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n viz._n the_o acknowledgement_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o profession_n of_o one_o faith_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o state_n of_o christian_a duty_n and_o privilege_n by_o one_o baptism_n ibid._n those_o particular_a church_n which_o keep_v unity_n in_o all_o these_o respect_v better_a than_o other_o do_v have_v the_o mark_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o those_o other_o have_v p._n 167._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o she_o hold_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o far_o maintain_v catholic_n unity_n ibid._n wherein_o she_o depart_v from_o catholic_n unity_n purity_n and_o charity_n show_v in_o several_a instance_n p._n 167_o 168._o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o chargeable_a on_o the_o same_o account_n ibid._n 168_o 169._o unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unity_n of_o communion_n among_o themselves_o but_o not_o catholic_n unity_n of_o communion_n because_o the_o term_n of_o it_o be_v many_o of_o they_o unlawful_a and_o unjust_a p._n 170._o the_o contrary_a to_o which_o the_o true_a case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ibid._n 171._o the_o conclusion_n p._n 171_o
mean_v by_o it_o p._n 234._o 2._o holiness_n of_o mind_n and_o manner_n what_o understand_v by_o it_o ibid._n ii_o neither_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o holiness_n can_v be_v proper_o call_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n ibid._n not_o the_o first_o because_o it_o appertain_v to_o its_o essence_n and_o constitution_n show_v what_o a_o church_n be_v and_o belong_v to_o every_o church_n whether_o greek_a abyssine_n roman_a or_o english_a p._n 235._o not_o the_o second_o kind_n and_o that_o for_o three_o reason_n 1._o because_o of_o that_o general_a admission_n of_o man_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o condition_n upon_o their_o profession_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n p._n 236._o 2._o because_o many_o man_n live_v sometime_o with_o more_o and_o sometime_o with_o less_o morality_n p._n 237._o 3._o because_o a_o man_n must_v first_o understand_v the_o nature_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o he_o can_v know_v what_o sanctity_n be_v and_o what_o that_o be_v in_o the_o life_n of_o any_o man_n which_o he_o be_v to_o take_v for_o the_o holiness_n of_o a_o christian_n p._n 238._o iii_o if_o holiness_n of_o life_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o roman_a church_n will_v not_o from_o this_o concession_n derive_v any_o great_a advantage_n p._n 239._o other_o church_n as_o famous_a as_o that_o of_o rome_n for_o their_o faith_n and_o manner_n ibid._n in_o latter_a age_n the_o goodness_n of_o moral_n in_o several_a of_o that_o communion_n to_o be_v ascribe_v not_o so_o much_o to_o popery_n as_o its_o cause_n but_o to_o those_o principle_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n p._n 240._o the_o reformation_n not_o free_a from_o bad_a man_n though_o this_o proceed_v from_o the_o man_n not_o from_o the_o cause_n ibid._n luther_n herein_o misrepresent_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o p._n 241._o great_a complaint_n of_o corruption_n in_o the_o romist_n writer_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n p._n 242._o many_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n infamous_a for_o their_o impiety_n p._n 243._o reflection_n on_o pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o last_o of_o the_o good_a and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o bad_a p._n 244._o on_o pope_n john_n the_o xii_o p._n 245._o on_o st._n dominick_n ibid._n on_o the_o austerity_n and_o mortification_n of_o their_o several_a order_n p._n 246._o many_o thing_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o by_o help_v forward_o a_o ill_a life_n do_v in_o part_n deface_v this_o mark_n of_o sanctity_n p._n 248._o the_o eleven_o note_n the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n beauties_n explication_n of_o this_o note_n and_o the_o ground_n upon_o which_o he_o build_v it_o p._n 250._o in_o answer_n to_o this_o three_o thing_n be_v lay_v down_o i._o that_o mere_a miracle_n without_o any_o other_o consideration_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a note_n of_o any_o church_n or_o religion_n whatever_o p._n 252._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n compare_v with_o those_o that_o be_v more_o peculiar_o appropriate_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 253._o the_o several_a circumstance_n consider_v which_o recommend_v the_o primitive_a miracle_n viz._n 1._o that_o they_o be_v high_o beneficial_a to_o human_a nature_n p._n 254._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n very_o many_o of_o they_o defective_a herein_o p._n 255._o 2._o the_o primitive_a miracle_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o significancy_n and_o the_o design_n of_o they_o plain_o lay_v down_o beforehand_o in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o v._o t._n p._n 256._o this_o apply_v to_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 257._o miracle_n in_o the_o most_o comprehensive_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v no_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o divinity_n of_o that_o doctrine_n they_o will_v advance_v p._n 258._o this_o instance_a in_o those_o of_o janne_n and_o jambres_n and_o of_o apollonius_n tyaneus_n p._n 259._o photius_n his_o censure_n of_o those_o of_o apollonius_n tyaneus_n p._n 260._o miracle_n whether_o suppose_v in_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o heretic_n not_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o good_a proof_n that_o either_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n p._n 261._o this_o apparent_a from_o st._n origen_n ibid._n st._n cyprian_n ib._n st._n irenaeus_n p._n 162._o st._n austin_n p._n 263._o ii_o miracle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o proof_n or_o confirmation_n of_o those_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n wherein_o the_o reform_a church_n differ_v from_o they_o p._n 264._o here_o three_o thing_n be_v consider_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n to_o expect_v any_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n whatever_o p._n 265._o this_o evident_a from_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n ibid._n the_o christian_a institution_n p._n 266._o the_o follow_a age_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n 2._o many_o of_o those_o doctrine_n for_o which_o these_o miracle_n be_v allege_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v assert_v or_o warrant_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o be_v rather_o contrary_a to_o they_o ibid._n this_o instance_a in_o transubstantiation_n p._n 266_o 267._o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n p._n 266_o 267._o worship_v of_o image_n p._n 266_o 267._o pray_v to_o saint_n depart_v p._n 266_o 267._o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n p._n 266_o 267._o miracle_n for_o the_o advance_v or_o support_v of_o those_o doctrine_n just_o suspect_v p._n 268._o 3._o no_o ground_n of_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o most_o of_o those_o miracle_n which_o the_o romanist_n make_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o church_n p._n 269._o the_o story_n of_o the_o bone_n of_o babylas_n consider_v ibid._n those_o of_o g●rvatius_n and_o proatsius_n reveal_v by_o vision_n to_o st._n ambrose_n reflect_v on_o p._n 270._o the_o fabulous_a story_n of_o late_a age_n among_o they_o condemn_v by_o several_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 271._o 1_o person_n st._n bernard_n reflect_v on_o p._n 273._o st._n john_n damascen_n p._n 274._o some_o miracle_n wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o transubstantiation_n consider_v p._n 273_o etc._n etc._n iii_o we_o of_o the_o reform_a religion_n as_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o the_o work_v of_o miracle_n in_o our_o age_n so_o if_o we_o do_v we_o can_v pretend_v to_o prove_v nothing_o by_o they_o but_o what_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n p._n 280._o the_o twelve_o note_n the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n two_o thing_n to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n 1._o that_o divine_a revelation_n whereby_o a_o man_n be_v enable_v to_o foretell_v such_o or_o such_o contingent_a event_n will_v come_v to_o pass_v p._n 285._o 2._o or_o the_o testimony_n that_o be_v give_v by_o the_o fulfil_n of_o prophecy_n to_o some_o doctrine_n that_o be_v design_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o it_o p._n 286._o in_o the_o latter_a sense_n it_o may_v be_v admit_v as_o a_o mark_n or_o rather_o a_o argument_n of_o that_o doctrine_n the_o profession_n whereof_o make_v the_o church_n p._n 287._o great_a caution_n must_v be_v use_v in_o lay_v down_o the_o fulfil_n the_o prediction_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n ibid._n two_o thing_n here_o examine_v i._o whether_o this_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n the_o cardinal_n offer_v three_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o p._n 288._o the_o first_o of_o they_o disprove_v and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o joel_n apply_v by_o st._n peter_n act_n 2.16_o to_o the_o church_n explain_v and_o vindicate_v p._n 289._o his_o second_o argument_n that_o none_o know_v future_a contingence_n but_o god_n only_o consider_v p._n 290._o his_o three_o argument_n from_o the_o 18_o of_o deut._n examine_v and_o overthrow_v p._n 291._o the_o foretell_v of_o a_o future_a contingent_a event_n no_o certain_a note_n of_o true_a doctrine_n ibid._n there_o have_v be_v true_a prophecy_n among_o heathen_n the_o famous_a acrostic_n of_o the_o sibylla_n erythroea_n the_o book_n of_o hystaspes_n the_o prediction_n of_o balaam_n which_o show_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n not_o to_o be_v confine_v within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 292_o 293._o light_n of_o prophecy_n no_o note_n of_o the_o church_n because_o separable_a from_o it_o there_o have_v be_v true_a prophecy_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o it_o have_v not_o always_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n p._n 294._o ii_o if_o it_o be_v a_o note_n the_o cardinal_n have_v not_o sufficient_o prove_v it_o belong_v to_o his_o church_n and_o no_o other_o p._n 295._o his_o instance_n of_o agabus_n and_o the_o old_a prophet_n may_v serve_v any_o christian_a church_n as_o well_o if_o not_o better_a than_o he_o ibid._n his_o instance_n of_o gregory_n thaumat_n bishop_n
of_o caesaria_n of_o anthony_n a_o egyptian_a monk_n of_o john_n a_o anchorite_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o his_o purpose_n p._n 296._o neither_o be_v the_o testimony_n concern_v st._n benedict_n st._n bernard_n and_o st._n francis._n p._n 297_o 298._o the_o nature_n of_o the_o prediction_n &_o prophecy_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v pretend_v to_o few_o such_o p._n 299_o to_o 302._o the_o prediction_n of_o philip_n nereus_n and_o of_o st._n rose_n p._n 303._o of_o hieronimus_fw-la savanorola_n p._n 304._o of_o johannes_n de_fw-fr rupe_n scissa_fw-la p._n 305._o of_o luther_n and_o melancthon_n and_o john_n huss_n p._n 306_o 307._o the_o thirteen_o note_n the_o confession_n of_o adversary_n the_o cardinal_n roundly_o affirm_v the_o force_n of_o their_o truth_n be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o enemy_n of_o it_o be_v constrain_v to_o bear_v witness_n to_o it_o p._n 309._o i._o whether_o such_o a_o testimony_n be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o because_o the_o church_n may_v be_v and_o be_v without_o it_o in_o its_o infancy_n the_o christian_a religion_n be_v call_v heresy_n by_o its_o adversary_n p._n 310_o 311._o our_o saviour_n rather_o make_v it_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o contrary_a so_o do_v tertullian_n and_o other_o p._n 312._o ii_o if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a note_n whether_o peculiar_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n exclusive_o to_o other_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n p._n 313._o the_o witness_n he_o produce_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n pliny_n testimony_n be_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o general_a and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v as_o to_o what_o he_o mention_n of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o christian_a soldier_n p._n 314_o 315._o josephus_n his_o testimony_n make_v as_o little_a for_o he_o or_o his_o church_n p._n 316._o neither_o be_v there_o any_o advantage_n arise_v to_o they_o from_o that_o of_o philo_n the_o jew_n p._n 317._o his_o other_o witness_n both_o turk_n and_o heretic_n trifle_v and_o insignificant_a p._n 318._o the_o cardinal_n affirm_v that_o whereas_o the_o catholic_n neither_o praise_n or_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n or_o life_n of_o heathen_n or_o heretic_n yet_o these_o speak_v well_o of_o they_o p._n 319._o vncharitableness_n a_o true_a character_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ibid._n catholic_n have_v commend_v the_o life_n both_o of_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n p._n 320._o and_o also_o our_o doctrine_n p._n 321_o to_o 324._o slater_n consensus_fw-la veterum_fw-la reflect_v on_o ibid._n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o jew_n how_o far_o useful_a to_o christianity_n p._n 324._o the_o jew_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n confess_v there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o jesus_n who_o wrought_v wonderful_a work_n ibid._n their_o testimony_n as_o to_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o as_o to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o those_o text_n appropriate_v to_o the_o messiah_n p._n 325._o mr._n slater_n ignorance_n of_o the_o jewish_a writer_n discover_v from_o p._n 326_o to_o 330._o the_o jewish_a writer_n great_a enemy_n to_o the_o new_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n p._n 133._o the_o fourteen_o note_n the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n what_o bellamine_n mean_v by_o a_o unhappy_a end_n p._n 335._o this_o intend_v by_o he_o not_o bare_o as_o a_o note_n of_o a_o church_n but_o of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n p._n 336._o the_o instance_n he_o produce_v of_o unhappy_a death_n be_v for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o impertinent_a ibid._n the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o who_o defend_v it_o must_v be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o false_a church_n if_o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o who_o oppose_v it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true._n p._n 337._o from_o god_n judgement_n against_o particular_a person_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v against_o that_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v member_n ibid._n this_o therefore_o no_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o be_v contrary_a 1._o to_o scripture_n p._n 338_o 339._o 2._o to_o daily_a observation_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o forego_n age_n p._n 340_o 341._o 3._o to_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n p._n 342._o this_o prove_v in_o five_o particular_n p._n 342_o 343_o 344._o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o protestant_n will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 344._o this_o will_v be_v evident_a by_o compare_v the_o death_n of_o their_o prime_a member_n and_o zealous_a champion_n and_o then_o consider_v on_o which_o side_n we_o find_v the_o great_a number_n of_o such_o as_o be_v unnatural_a and_o not_o common_a to_o man_n p._n 345._o protestant_n bishop_n and_o other_o eminent_a pastor_n among_o they_o without_o number_n have_v die_v the_o most_o happy_a death_n ibid._n the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o have_v meet_v with_o unhappy_a end_n very_o few_o p._n 346._o five_o only_o mention_v by_o our_o adversary_n luther_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n carolostadius_fw-la and_o calvin_n ibid._n the_o death_n of_o luther_n misrepresent_v by_o they_o p._n 347._o sleidans_fw-la account_n of_o it_o and_o father_n paul_n thuanus_n quite_o different_a from_o that_o of_o his_o bitter_a enemy_n p._n 348_o 349._o zuinglius_fw-la his_o death_n another_o instance_n of_o bellarmine_n p._n 350._o oecolampadius_n his_o death_n false_o relate_v by_o the_o cardinal_n ibid._n and_o carolostadius_fw-la his_o being_n kill_v by_o the_o devil_n expose_v as_o a_o notorious_a forgery_n by_o petrus_n roquinus_n p._n 351._o the_o story_n of_o calvin_n death_n large_o consider_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v so_o lewd_a a_o calumny_n that_o any_o man_n but_o a_o advocate_n for_o their_o church_n may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o own_v it_o p._n 351_o to_o 359._o no_o mention_n make_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o any_o unhappy_a end_n of_o those_o prince_n and_o secular_a power_n who_o have_v be_v great_a defender_n of_o the_o protestant_n faith._n p._n 360._o several_a dismal_a end_n of_o cardinal_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o especial_o of_o their_o pope_n p._n 360_o 361_o 362._o the_o unhappy_a death_n of_o several_a of_o their_o prince_n particular_o five_a successive_o together_o in_o france_n p._n 363._o the_o advantage_n therefore_o on_o this_o account_n on_o the_o protestant_a side_n ibid._n conclusion_n the_o fifteen_o note_n temporal_a felicity_n this_o note_n even_o in_o the_o cardinal_n opinion_n liable_a to_o many_o exception_n and_o therefore_o at_o once_o to_o prevent_v they_o all_o he_o tell_v we_o roundly_o that_o catholic_n prince_n never_o adhere_v unto_o god_n hearty_o but_o that_o they_o most_o easy_o triumph_v over_o their_o enemy_n p._n 368._o i._o this_o can_v be_v esteem_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o because_o god_n have_v no_o where_o promise_v it_o in_o all_o the_o holy_a gospel_n p._n 369._o 2._o because_o for_o several_a age_n together_o the_o church_n can_v not_o pretend_v to_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o temporal_a felicity_n p._n 370._o 3._o because_o of_o those_o misery_n which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n must_v endure_v in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n p._n 371._o ii_o the_o historical_a passage_n which_o the_o cardinal_n produce_v for_o this_o note_n do_v not_o prove_v what_o he_o intend_v p._n 372._o great_a partiality_n make_v use_v of_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o these_o instance_n p._n 373._o the_o story_n of_o rhadagaisus_n and_o his_o son_n death_n the_o defeat_n of_o the_o numerous_a army_n of_o the_o goth_n by_o honorius_n consider_v ibid._n the_o various_a success_n of_o the_o holy-war_n do_v at_o last_o conclude_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o infidel_n p._n 374._o the_o story_n of_o the_o albigenses_n and_o the_o success_n of_o both_o side_n impartial_o relate_v wherein_o these_o heretic_n seem_v clear_o to_o have_v the_o advantage_n p._n 375_o 376_o 377._o the_o victory_n of_o charles_n the_o v._o no_o such_o mighty_a miracle_n as_o pretend_v p._n 378._o many_o example_n of_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n allege_v who_o have_v be_v as_o prosperous_a and_o successful_a in_o the_o world_n as_o any_o catholic_n can_v pretend_v to_o p._n 379._o the_o history_n of_o uladislaus_n king_n of_o poland_n and_o hungary_n upon_o his_o rapture_n of_o the_o peace_n with_o amurath_n the_o second_o p._n 380._o the_o unfortunate_a battle_n of_o mohatz_n relate_v p._n 381._o the_o prosperous_a reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o attempt_n both_o of_o foreign_a and_o domestic_a enemy_n p._n 381._o to_o 387._o the_o author_n of_o the_o use_n and_o great_a moment_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n reflect_v upon_o p._n 388._o 389._o the_o recapitulation_n and_o conclusion_n to_o the_o
omit_v personal_n contest_v but_o insert_v whatsoever_o concern_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o protestant_n or_o defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o a_o exact_a table_n of_o content_n and_o a_o addition_n of_o some_o genuine_a piece_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n never_o before_o print_v viz._n against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n transubstantiation_n tradition_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o account_n of_o what_o move_v the_o author_n to_o turn_v papist_n with_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o say_a motive_n a_o historical_a treatise_n write_v by_o a_o author_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v transubstantiation_n wherein_o be_v make_v appear_v that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o church_n this_o doctrine_n can_v be_v a_o article_n of_o faith._n 40._o the_o protestant_n companion_n or_o a_o impartial_a survey_n and_o comparison_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o by_o law_n establish_v with_o the_o main_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n wherein_o be_v show_v that_o popery_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n primitive_a father_n and_o council_n and_o that_o prove_v from_o holy_a writ_n the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o several_a hundred_o year_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a papist_n themselves_o 40._o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n a_o treatise_n show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n false_o claim_v to_o be_v that_o church_n and_o the_o pillar_n of_o that_o truth_n mention_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n chap._n 3._o verse_n 15._o 4o._o the_o people_n right_a to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n assert_v 4o._o a_o short_a summary_n of_o the_o principal_a controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o vindication_n of_o several_a protestant_a doctrine_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v protestancy_n destitute_a of_o scripture_n proof_n 4o._o a_o answer_n to_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n entitle_v the_o judgement_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n concern_v one_o special_a branch_n of_o the_o king_n prerogative_n viz._n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o penal_a law_n 4o._o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o the_o two_o great_a point_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o two_o discourse_n late_o print_v at_o oxford_n on_o this_o subject_a to_o which_o be_v perfix_v a_o large_a historical_a preface_n relate_v to_o the_o same_o argument_n two_o discourse_n of_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o fifteen_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o lay_v down_o by_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n examine_v and_o confute_v 4o._o with_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n preparation_n for_o death_n be_v a_o letter_n send_v to_o a_o young_a gentlewoman_n in_o france_n in_o a_o dangerous_a distemper_n of_o which_o she_o die_v by_o w._n w._n 12o._o the_o difference_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o opposition_n to_o a_o late_a book_n entitle_v a_o agreement_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o private_a prayer_n to_o be_v use_v in_o difficult_a time_n a_o true_a account_n of_o a_o conference_n hold_v about_o religion_n at_o london_n sept._n 29_o 1687_o between_o a._n pulton_n jesuit_n and_o tho._n tenison_n d._n d._n as_o also_o of_o that_o which_o lead_v to_o it_o and_o follow_v after_o it_o 4o._o the_o vindication_n of_o a._n cressener_n schoolmaster_n in_o long-acre_n from_o the_o aspersion_n of_o a._n pulton_n jesuit_n schoolmaster_n in_o the_o savoy_n together_o with_o some_o account_n of_o his_o discourse_n with_o mr._n meredith_n a_o discourse_n show_v that_o protestant_n be_v on_o the_o safe_a side_n notwithstanding_o the_o uncharitable_a judgement_n of_o their_o adversary_n and_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o sure_a way_n to_o heaven_n 4o._o six_o conference_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n wherein_o be_v show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n overthrow_v the_o proof_n of_o christian_a religion_n a_o discourse_n concern_v the_o pretend_a sacrament_n of_o extreme_a unction_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o occasion_n and_o beginning_n of_o it_o in_o the_o western_a church_n in_o three_o part_n with_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o vindicator_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n the_o pamphlet_n entitle_v speculum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la or_o a_o ecclesiastical_a prospective-glass_n consider_v in_o its_o false_a reason_n and_o quotation_n there_o be_v add_v by_o way_n of_o preface_n two_o further_a answer_n the_o first_o to_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o speculum_fw-la the_o second_o to_o the_o half-sheet_n against_o the_o six_o conference_n a_o second_o defence_n of_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o the_o new_a exception_n of_o mons_fw-la de_fw-fr meaux_n late_a bishop_n of_o condom_n and_o his_o vindicator_n the_o first_o part_n in_o which_o the_o account_n that_o have_v be_v give_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o meaux_n exposition_n be_v full_o vindicated_n the_o distinction_n of_o old_a and_o new_a popery_n historical_o assert_v and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o point_n of_o image-worship_n more_o particular_o consider_v 40._o the_o incurable_a scepticism_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o six_o conference_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n 40._o mr._n pulton_n consider_v in_o his_o sincerity_n reason_v authority_n or_o a_o just_a answer_n to_o what_o he_o have_v hitherto_o publish_v in_o his_o true_a account_n his_o true_a and_o full_a account_n of_o a_o conference_n etc._n etc._n his_o remark_n and_o in_o they_o his_o pretend_a confutation_n of_o what_o he_o call_v dr._n it_o be_v rule_n of_o faith._n by_o tho._n tenison_n d._n d._n a_o full_a view_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n relate_v to_o the_o eucharist_n whole_o different_a from_o those_o of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o sufficient_a confutation_n of_o consensus_fw-la veterum_fw-la nubes_fw-la testium_fw-la and_o other_o late_a collection_n of_o the_o father_n pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a 40._o a_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n with_o some_o reflection_n on_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n note_n license_v april_n 6._o 1687._o jo._n batte_o london_n print_v for_o ric._n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n mdclxxxvii_o page_n 11._o l._n 15._o for_o character_n r._n charter_n and_o p._n 14._o l._n 8._o r._n charter_n p._n 16._o l._n 12._o after_o ancient_n and_o apostolic_a church_n add_v which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o his_o second_o note_n concern_v antiquity_n which_o must_v refer_v to_o the_o antiquity_n of_o its_o doctrine_n for_o a_o ancient_a church_n though_o found_v many_o year_n since_o if_o it_o have_v innovate_v in_o doctrine_n can_v plead_v antiquity_n and_o a_o church_n found_v but_o yesterday_o which_o profess_v the_o ancient_a faith_n may_v p._n 18._o l._n 6._o f._n first_o r._n five_o p._n 22._o l._n 14._o f._n now_o r._n more_o a_o brief_a discourse_n concern_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n if_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n have_v not_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o be_v a_o most_o profitable_a controversy_n ecclesiae_fw-la controu._n t._n 2._o l._n 4_o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la i_o shall_v very_o much_o have_v wonder_v at_o that_o pain_n which_o he_o and_o so_o many_o other_o of_o their_o great_a divine_n have_v take_v to_o find_v out_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n visible_a and_o if_o we_o can_v see_v which_o be_v this_o church_n what_o need_v we_o guess_v at_o it_o by_o mark_n and_o sign_n and_o that_o by_o such_o mark_n and_o sign_n too_o as_o be_v matter_n of_o dispute_n themselves_o can_v we_o distinguish_v between_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o a_o turkish_a mosque_n or_o jewish_a synagogue_n or_o pagan_a temple_n can_v we_o without_o all_o this_o ado_n distinguish_v a_o christian_a from_o a_o turk_n or_o a_o jew_n or_o a_o pagan_a and_o it_o will_v be_v as_o easy_a to_o find_v out_o a_o christian_a church_n as_o it_o be_v to_o find_v out_o christian_n for_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n unite_v under_o christian_a pastor_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o christ_n and_o where_o ever_o we_o find_v such_o a_o society_n as_o this_o there_o be_v a_o christian_a church_n and_o all_o such_o particular_a or_o national_a church_n all_o the_o world_n over_o make_v up_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n or_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o this_o will_v not_o do_v the_o cardinal_n business_n though_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v visible_a enough_o yet_o not_o such_o a_o church_n as_o he_o
of_o corinth_n deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o galatian_n warp_a towards_o judaisme_n and_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n be_v guilty_a of_o great_a miscarriage_n in_o receive_v the_o lords-supper_n and_o yet_o be_v own_v for_o true_a church_n by_o the_o apostle_n a_o argument_n which_o much_o become_v the_o cardinal_n to_o use_v it_o be_v the_o best_a evidence_n i_o know_v of_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n that_o every_o corruption_n in_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n do_v not_o unchurch_n but_o how_o this_o prove_v that_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o essential_a note_n and_o character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n i_o can_v guess_v i_o will_v desire_v any_o one_o to_o tell_v i_o for_o he_o whether_o a_o corrupt_a faith_n and_o false_a sacrament_n be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n as_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o church_n what_o our_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n be_v second_o let_v we_o now_o consider_v the_o cardinal_n way_n by_o some_o certain_a mark_n and_o note_n to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n one_o church_n which_o we_o must_v own_v for_o the_o only_a true_a church_n and_o reject_v all_o other_o church_n which_o do_v not_o subject_v themselves_o to_o this_o one_o church_n to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o church_n on_o who_o authority_n we_o must_v rely_v for_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n and_o in_o who_o communion_n only_o pardon_v of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v have_v that_o this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o note_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v already_o show_v you_o and_o true_o they_o be_v very_o pretty_a thing_n to_o be_v prove_v by_o note_n as_o to_o consider_v they_o particular_o 1._o to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v this_o methinks_v be_v not_o a_o natural_a way_n of_o inquiry_n but_o be_v like_o seek_v for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o there_o be_v two_o inquiry_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n viz._n whether_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o and_o what_o it_o be_v the_o first_o of_o these_o the_o cardinal_n take_v for_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n but_o i_o will_v take_v it_o for_o grant_v but_o desire_v these_o note-maker_n to_o give_v i_o some_o note_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o talk_n and_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n about_o a_o church_n but_o that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o self-evident_a proposition_n that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v prove_v now_o that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o note_n as_o well_o as_o which_o be_v this_o true_a church_n or_o else_o the_o whole_a design_n of_o note_n be_v lose_v and_o i_o will_v glad_o see_v those_o note_n which_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o church_n be_v to_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o this_o we_o must_v brief_o consider_v the_o reason_n and_o use_v of_o note_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o popish_a resolution_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o thing_n we_o must_v know_v be_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o we_o must_v receive_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n and_o worship_n from_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v know_v nothing_o of_o religion_n till_o we_o have_v find_v the_o church_n the_o use_n then_o of_o note_n be_v to_o find_v out_o the_o church_n before_o and_o without_o the_o scripture_n for_o if_o they_o admit_v of_o a_o scripture-proof_n they_o must_v allow_v that_o we_o can_v know_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n without_o the_o authority_n or_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o undermine_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o popery_n now_o i_o first_o desire_n to_o know_v how_o they_o will_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n without_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o will_v say_v be_v visible_a itself_o for_o we_o see_v a_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o what_o be_v it_o i_o see_v i_o see_v a_o company_n of_o man_n who_o call_v themselves_o a_o church_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v see_v and_o be_v this_o see_v a_o church_n a_o church_n must_v have_v a_o divine_a original_a and_o institution_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o see_v a_o church_n without_o see_v its_o character_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o note_n or_o mark_v of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n but_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o and_o this_o prove_v that_o we_o can_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n without_o know_v in_o some_o measure_n what_o this_o church_n be_v for_o the_o charter_n which_o find_v the_o church_n must_v declare_v the_o nature_n and_o constitution_n of_o it_o what_o its_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o law_n and_o privilege_n be_v but_o now_o these_o essential_a character_n of_o a_o church_n must_v not_o be_v reckon_v by_o the_o romanist_n among_o the_o note_n of_o a_o church_n for_o than_o we_o must_v find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o the_o true_a worship_n not_o the_o true_a faith_n by_o the_o true_a church_n which_o destroy_v popery_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o these_o note-maker_n never_o attempt_v to_o give_v we_o any_o note_n whereby_o we_o shall_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n or_o what_o this_o church_n be_v for_o there_o be_v no_o note_n of_o these_o but_o such_o as_o they_o dare_v not_o give_v viz._n the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o every_o man_n private_a judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o they_o for_o at_o least_o till_o we_o have_v find_v a_o church_n we_o must_v judge_n for_o ourselves_o and_o then_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n come_v too_o late_o for_o we_o must_v first_o judge_v upon_o the_o whole_a of_o religion_n if_o we_o must_v find_v out_o a_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a faith_n before_o we_o can_v know_v the_o true_a church_n and_o we_o can_v rely_v on_o her_o authority_n before_o we_o know_v she_o and_o therefore_o they_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n which_o they_o can_v never_o prove_v in_o their_o way_n and_o attempt_v to_o give_v some_o note_n whereby_o to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o church_n and_o then_o learn_v what_o the_o church_n be_v from_o the_o church_n herself_o which_o be_v like_o give_v mark_n whereby_o to_o know_v a_o unicorn_n before_o i_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o unicorn_n or_o not_o or_o what_o it_o be_v 2._o another_o blunder_n in_o this_o dispute_n about_o note_n be_v that_o they_o give_v we_o note_n whereby_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v for_o all_o bellarmin_n note_n be_v intend_v only_o for_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o his_o first_o note_n be_v the_o name_n catholic_n whereas_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n unite_v together_o by_o one_o common_a faith_n and_o worship_n and_o such_o act_n of_o communion_n as_o distinct_a church_n be_v capable_a of_o and_o oblige_v to_o every_o particular_a church_n which_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o true_a christian_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v all_o the_o true_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o have_v all_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o communion_n so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v before_o we_o know_v what_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v as_o it_o be_v to_o know_v what_o the_o sea_n be_v before_o we_o know_v what_o water_n be_v every_o true_a single_a particular_a church_n have_v the_o whole_a and_o entire_a nature_n of_o a_o church_n and_o will_v be_v a_o true_a church_n though_o there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o christian_a church_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v before_o any_o other_o christian_a church_n be_v plant_v and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n and_o that_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o what_o all_o true_a christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n agree_v in_o viz._n the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n of_o christ_n now_o so_o far_o as_o bellarmin_n note_n belong_v to_o every_o true_a particular_a church_n so_o far_o we_o allow_v they_o and_o let_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v the_o best_a of_o they_o she_o can_v for_o we_o doubt_v not_o to_o make_v our_o claim_n to_o they_o as_o good_a and_o much_o better_a than_o she_o but_o he_o have_v name_v very_o few_o such_o the_o 6_o the_o agreement_n and_o consent_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o ancient_n and_o apostolic_a church_n and_o
consistent_a with_o the_o pain_n and_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n which_o bellarmin_n tell_v we_o be_v hot_a than_o hell_n itself_o be_v past_o my_o apprehension_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o soul_n be_v to_o continue_v in_o purgatory_n till_o they_o have_v make_v full_a satisfaction_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v thorough_o purge_v from_o they_o and_o that_o whoever_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o debt_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o be_v pay_v either_o in_o this_o world_n or_o in_o purgatory_n before_o they_o can_v be_v admit_v into_o heaven_n be_v accurse_v council_n trid._n sess_n 6._o can._n 30._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v the_o cup_n be_v not_o to_o be_v administer_v to_o the_o laity_n and_o give_v many_o reason_n for_o it_o lest_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v spill_v lest_o the_o wine_n keep_v for_o the_o sick_a shall_v fret_v lest_o wine_n may_v not_o always_o be_v have_v or_o lest_o some_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v the_o smell_n or_o taste_v of_o it_o whether_o these_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n or_o no_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n enjoin_v all_o to_o believe_v they_o so_o under_o a_o anathema_n council_n trid._n sess_n 21._o can._n 1._o &_o 2._o the_o council_n of_o constance_n acknowledge_v that_o our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o that_o it_o so_o continue_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o century_n and_o yet_o with_o a_o notwithstanding_o to_o both_o these_o it_o sacrilegious_o rob_v the_o people_n of_o the_o cup._n council_n const_n sess_n 13._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o the_o priest_n pronounce_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o species_n or_o accident_n only_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v and_o have_v make_v it_o a_o article_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o under_o a_o anathema_n council_n trid._n sess_n 13._o the_o real_a praes_n c._n 1._o cornel._n a_o lapide_fw-la tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o some_o of_o their_o grave_a divine_n that_o this_o change_n be_v make_v after_o so_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a manner_n that_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v incarnate_v before_o the_o force_n of_o this_o charm_n will_v have_v incarnate_v he_o and_o clothe_v he_o with_o human_a nature_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n christ_n be_v offer_v as_o often_o as_o that_o be_v celebrate_v and_o that_o though_o therein_o he_o be_v unbloody_o offer_v yet_o be_v it_o a_o true_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n both_o of_o the_o live_n and_o dead_a council_n trid._n sess_n 22._o cap._n 1._o and_o declare_v the_o person_n accurse_v that_o deny_v any_o part_n of_o this_o ibid._n in_o all_o these_o particular_n you_o see_v and_o several_a other_o may_v be_v instanced_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n bear_v a_o manifest_a repugnance_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n now_o if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v allow_v so_o much_o as_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n in_o those_o thing_n it_o particular_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n contradict_v that_o rule_n in_o those_o thing_n must_v be_v condemn_v for_o a_o corrupter_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o doctrine_n and_o have_v thus_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o she_o hold_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n it_o be_v as_o evident_a that_o she_o be_v not_o and_o consequent_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o catholic_n church_n the_o end_n london_n print_v for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o second_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz._n antiquity_n secunda_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la antiqvitas_fw-la bellar._n l._n four_o c._n v._o de_fw-la notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la apr._n 5._o 1687._o jo._n batte_o it_o be_v a_o shrewd_a sign_n that_o a_o church_n be_v in_o a_o ill_a case_n when_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o witty_a defender_n of_o it_o commend_v it_o to_o the_o world_n by_o such_o mark_n and_o character_n whereby_o they_o say_v it_o may_v be_v know_v as_o be_v neither_o proper_a to_o it_o alone_o nor_o in_o truth_n belong_v to_o it_o but_o more_o true_o and_o evident_o belong_v to_o they_o who_o they_o oppose_v that_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o famous_a note_n of_o antiquity_n which_o bellarmin_n and_o other_o make_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o will_v clear_o and_o distinct_o demonstrate_v by_o show_v these_o three_o thing_n i._o that_o the_o plea_n of_o bare_a antiquity_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o church_n but_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o society_n of_o false_a religion_n ii_o that_o true_a antiquity_n be_v not_o on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n but_o iii_o that_o it_o be_v true_o on_o we_o i._o it_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o even_o by_o they_o who_o make_v antiquity_n a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o note_n of_o a_o thing_n must_v be_v proper_a to_o that_o of_o which_o they_o be_v a_o note_n and_o not_o common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o thing_n which_o quite_o destroy_v this_o note_n of_o antiquity_n upon_o a_o double_a account_n first_o because_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o a_o thing_n be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o and_o do_v ever_o belong_v to_o it_o since_o it_o have_v a_o be_v and_o can_v at_o no_o time_n without_o the_o destruction_n of_o its_o be_v be_v absent_a from_o it_o this_o every_o freshman_n in_o learning_n know_v and_o by_o that_o may_v know_v that_o antiquity_n be_v not_o a_o note_n proper_a to_o the_o church_n because_o it_o do_v not_o always_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n for_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o church_n be_v new._n which_o be_v object_v to_o it_o by_o the_o adversary_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n answer_v the_o very_a same_o to_o they_o then_o that_o we_o do_v to_o the_o romanist_n now_o as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o observe_v second_o that_o other_o society_n have_v lay_v claim_n to_o this_o note_n and_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o proper_a note_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v certain_o know_v be_v common_a to_o it_o with_o other_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n 1._o for_o first_o the_o samaritan_n claim_v it_o against_o the_o jew_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o woman_n discourse_n with_o our_o saviour_n joh._n four_o 20._o our_o father_n worship_v in_o this_o mountain_n etc._n etc._n they_o have_v do_v so_o for_o many_o age_n before_o they_o worship_v in_o jerusalem_n for_o here_o god_n appear_v unto_o abraham_n who_o here_o also_o build_v a_o altar_n when_o he_o come_v first_o out_o of_o chaldea_n gen._n twelve_o 6_o 7._o here_o jacob_n likewise_o build_v a_o altar_n when_o he_o come_v out_o of_o mesopotamia_n gen._n xxxiii_o 20._o here_o there_o be_v a_o sanctuary_n in_o the_o day_n of_o joshua_n who_o give_v his_o last_o charge_n to_o israel_n and_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o they_o in_o this_o place_n chap._n xxiv_o 25_o 26._o here_o the_o patriarch_n be_v bury_v v._o 32._o nay_o hereabouts_o be_v shiloh_n judg._n xxi_o 19_o where_o by_o the_o order_n of_o joshua_n the_o tabernacle_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v settle_v long_o before_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o jerusalem_n josh_n xviii_o 1_o 2._o which_o be_v all_o this_o time_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o jebusite_n to_o which_o plea_n the_o jew_n can_v not_o make_v a_o answer_n but_o by_o maintain_v this_o principle_n that_o not_o the_o antiquity_n of_o place_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n precept_n be_v to_o be_v their_o direction_n in_o this_o case_n and_o god_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o holy_a book_n have_v choose_v jerusalem_n to_o place_v his_o name_n there_o 2._o thus_o the_o jew_n themselves_o argue_v against_o christ_n that_o he_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n which_o have_v be_v derive_v to_o they_o from_o ancient_a time_n mark_v seven_o 1_o etc._n etc._n and_o against_o christian_n who_o they_o call_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o nazarene_o act_v xxiv_o 5._o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v heretic_n new_o spring_v up_o from_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n 3._o and_o thus_o the_o pagan_n argue_v against_o they_o both_o particular_o against_o the_o christian_n say_v to_o st._n paul_n at_o athens_n may_v we_o know_v what_o this_o new_a doctrine_n whereof_o thou_o speak_v be_v act_n xvii_o 19_o and_o in_o aftertime_n call_v it_o a_o novel_a religion_n a_o
often_o fallacious_a way_n of_o argue_v however_o popular_a and_o that_o need_v less_o trouble_n in_o examination_n from_o person_n to_o thing_n whereas_o these_o will_v continue_v the_o same_o but_o they_o be_v changeable_a 1._o but_o than_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v of_o the_o roman_a succession_n that_o the_o case_n seem_v so_o extreme_o change_v since_o the_o first_o time_n so_o great_a a_o alteration_n there_o be_v in_o the_o person_n and_o in_o the_o office_n to_o which_o the_o succession_n be_v now_o come_v that_o it_o can_v hardly_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o same_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v all_o that_o we_o can_v find_v for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n lay_v claim_n to_o and_o our_o note_n be_v only_o concern_v in_o it_o though_o in_o some_o few_o single_a act_n it_o begin_v by_o degree_n to_o be_v stretch_v so_o as_o to_o put_v other_o bishop_n upon_o their_o guard_n and_o protestation_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o appeal_n by_o the_o african_n yet_o be_v all_o bishop_n own_v to_o have_v a_o equal_a share_n in_o that_o all_o to_o be_v of_o like_a power_n and_o authority_n all_o alike_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n whether_o at_o rome_n or_o in_o the_o mean_a city_n as_o in_o the_o know_a testimony_n in_o st._n cyprian_a and_o st._n jerom_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o papal_a power_n now_o challenge_v and_o exercise_v be_v so_o vast_o and_o wide_o different_a from_o episcopacy_n that_o scarce_o any_o propriety_n of_o speech_n can_v bring_v they_o under_o the_o same_o name_n but_o to_o come_v to_o matter_n of_o fact._n notwithstanding_o the_o high_a eulogium_n give_v by_o the_o ancient_n on_o particular_a occasion_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o bishop_n and_o the_o very_a bold_a effort_n and_o very_o lofty_a aspire_n of_o some_o of_o these_o yet_o he_o must_v have_v other_o eye_n or_o other_o spectacle_n than_o we_o can_v procure_v who_o can_v espy_v any_o thing_n like_o the_o supremacy_n and_o authority_n claim_v by_o the_o present_a papacy_n in_o the_o principle_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o more_o than_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o as_o have_v be_v observe_v can_v not_o but_o have_v be_v as_o discernible_a in_o all_o the_o history_n of_o those_o time_n as_o the_o reference_n to_o the_o power_n of_o our_o king_n and_o manner_n of_o our_o government_n must_v be_v in_o our_o own_o history_n 2._o far_o indeed_o there_o seem_v no_o great_a reason_n for_o they_o to_o be_v much_o concern_v at_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o very_o favourable_a to_o the_o very_a order_n we_o know_v what_o great_a opposition_n in_o their_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n meet_v with_o from_o the_o chief_a favourite_n of_o that_o see_v when_o the_o determination_n be_v so_o strong_o press_v by_o other_o 24._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n l._n 1._o c._n 8_o 9_o l._n 4._o c._n 24._o and_o the_o author_n of_o these_o note_n be_v pleat_v to_o determine_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v chief_o in_o the_o bishop_n but_o proper_o and_o entire_o monarchical_a in_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o that_o he_o derive_v his_o power_n immediate_o from_o christ_n but_o the_o bishop_n have_v they_o from_o he_o as_o to_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v government_n 3._o moreover_o they_o have_v the_o less_o reason_n to_o except_v against_o any_o church_n for_o the_o want_n of_o this_o apostolical_a order_n when_o their_o very_a catechism_n that_o multiply_v order_n with_o much_o less_o distinction_n of_o office_n make_v this_o no_o distinct_a order_n but_o only_o a_o different_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n the_o supreme_a order_n in_o their_o church_n ascend_v only_o gradual_o from_o that_o of_o a_o common_a presbyter_n to_o that_o of_o bishop_n arch-bishop_n patriarch_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o some_o of_o the_o intermediate_v we_o know_v admit_v no_o distinct_a ordination_n nay_o the_o pretend_a plenary_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n have_v sometime_o by_o particular_a delegation_n empower_v mitre_a abbot_n but_o mere_a presbyter_n to_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o two_o of_o the_o bishop_n if_o but_o one_o be_v present_a even_o in_o ordination_n itself_o and_o that_o of_o a_o bishop_n as_o bellarmine_n in_o this_o very_a note_n yield_v many_o other_o instance_n may_v be_v give_v of_o their_o endeavour_n to_o advance_v the_o first_o as_o it_o be_v on_o purpose_n to_o fence_v off_o the_o danger_n of_o a_o rival_n to_o what_o use_n else_o shall_v serve_v so_o many_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n long_o complain_v of_o their_o chief_a rise_n have_v be_v upon_o the_o depression_n of_o bishop_n and_o rob_v they_o of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n so_o quite_o opposite_a be_v the_o true_a case_n from_o the_o jealousy_n of_o some_o about_o this_o primitive_a order_n 4._o also_o they_o will_v have_v little_a cause_n to_o glory_n much_o in_o this_o pretend_a uninterrupted_a succession_n when_o they_o consider_v how_o many_o nullity_n according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n may_v dissolve_v and_o separate_v the_o close_a connexion_n thereof_o for_o beside_o confuse_a tumultuary_a and_o simoniacal_a promotion_n from_o which_o their_o own_o writer_n will_v scarce_o free_v some_o of_o they_o that_o one_o principle_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o any_o sacrament_n have_v need_n make_v they_o fearful_a of_o rely_v too_o much_o upon_o it_o for_o in_o case_n this_o be_v once_o want_v in_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a source_n through_o so_o long_a a_o tract_n of_o time_n variety_n of_o circumstance_n and_o different_a temper_n of_o person_n which_o many_o will_v think_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o suppose_v however_o can_v never_o be_v certain_o prove_v otherwise_o by_o this_o rule_n they_o can_v be_v secure_a of_o any_o order_n yea_o scarce_o of_o any_o true_a christian_a among_o they_o so_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o inquiry_n how_o insufficient_a a_o proof_n this_o will_v afford_v they_o of_o any_o great_a advantage_n 3_o inquiry_n 3_o indeed_o bellarmin_n himself_o seem_v so_o just_a as_o in_o part_n to_o yield_v this_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o four_o objection_n about_o this_o note_n he_o say_v a_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v that_o there_o the_o church_n be_v not_o where_o there_o be_v not_o this_o succession_n but_o it_o can_v thence_o necessary_o be_v gather_v that_o there_o the_o church_n be_v wheresoever_o this_o succession_n be_v so_o that_o it_o seem_v no_o positive_a proof_n with_o he_o wherefore_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o exclude_v the_o eastern_a church_n or_o break_v their_o succession_n upon_o pretence_n of_o heresy_n 1._o for_o first_o this_o succession_n be_v no_o sufficient_a evividence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o church_n indeed_o be_v tradition_n so_o infallible_a a_o conveyance_n of_o truth_n as_o some_o man_n that_o talk_v of_o nothing_o below_o demonstration_n will_v vouch_v be_v it_o impossible_a for_o any_o new_a opinion_n to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n be_v it_o necessary_a that_o man_n must_v believe_v to_o day_n as_o they_o do_v yesterday_o and_o so_o in_o short_a as_o it_o be_v at_o one_o leap_v up_o to_o the_o very_a apostle_n and_o that_o the_o passage_n of_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n be_v able_a to_o make_v as_o little_a alteration_n in_o the_o memorial_n or_o evidence_n of_o what_o doctrine_n or_o rule_n of_o practice_n be_v first_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o the_o last_o night_n sleep_n do_v of_o what_o pass_v the_o day_n before_o then_o every_o church_n of_o apostolical_a foundation_n and_o such_o be_v all_o then_o plant_v have_v be_v and_o will_v still_o continue_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n think_v herself_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v any_o dispute_n about_o their_o tenet_n nor_o any_o such_o exception_n against_o their_o succession_n what_o security_n they_o have_v from_o the_o defection_n which_o other_o be_v charge_v with_o or_o have_v be_v find_v liable_a to_o what_o evidence_n may_v be_v produce_v that_o any_o church_n or_o company_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n may_v not_o add_v in_o process_n of_o time_n some_o doctrine_n and_o usage_n very_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v only_o with_o safety_n to_o be_v make_v into_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n alone_o by_o itself_o or_o its_o dependent_n we_o be_v yet_o to_o seek_v and_o much_o wonder_n that_o the_o ancient_n in_o all_o their_o dispute_n with_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n shall_v take_v so_o great_a a_o compass_n to_o confute_v their_o adversary_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o other_o authority_n beside_o what_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n afford_v and_o not_o with_o our_o
that_o she_o impose_v must_v be_v set_v by_o till_o it_o appear_v that_o she_o require_v the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o no_o other_o than_o what_o be_v teach_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o according_a to_o this_o note_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n till_o it_o first_o appear_v that_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o till_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n it_o can_v sure_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o infallible_a one_o for_o it_o can_v he_o pretend_v that_o infallibility_n belong_v to_o any_o but_o the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v first_o know_v that_o the_o present_a church_n agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a before_o it_o can_v be_v know_v that_o she_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n or_o teacher_n so_o that_o we_o manifest_o gain_v this_o first_o by_o this_o note_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o those_o big_a and_o bluster_a claim_n to_o infallibility_n must_v be_v postpone_v and_o lay_v aside_o till_o that_o of_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v make_v out_o and_o when_o that_o be_v do_v we_o shall_v not_o have_v quite_o so_o much_o reason_n to_o question_v her_o infallibility_n we_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o have_v the_o matter_n bring_v to_o this_o issue_n whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a or_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v agree_v best_a with_o the_o primitive_a since_o for_o reason_n well_o know_v to_o themselves_o and_o very_o much_o suspect_v by_o other_o they_o be_v so_o willing_a to_o go_v off_o from_o scripture_n and_o to_o decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o that_o as_o incompetent_a and_o insufficient_a in_o most_o of_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o we_o be_v very_o ready_a to_o leave_v they_o to_o be_v decide_v by_o any_o other_o indifferent_a arbitrator_n for_o we_o think_v it_o be_v a_o little_a odd_a and_o unreasonable_a they_o shall_v make_v themselves_o the_o only_a judge_n of_o what_o be_v in_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v very_o ready_a to_o stand_v to_o the_o award_n and_o vmpirage_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o we_o be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o afraid_a to_o venture_v our_o whole_a cause_n to_o the_o sentence_n and_o decision_n of_o that_o for_o though_o the_o scripture_n be_v our_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o because_o we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o revelation_n but_o that_o and_o nothing_o but_o revelation_n make_v any_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v yet_o we_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o take_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n both_o from_o itself_o and_o from_o the_o primitive_a church_n too_o so_o according_a to_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n to_o have_v the_o line_n of_o scriptural_a interpretation_n be_v direct_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_n judgement_n 2._o judgement_n ut_fw-la propheticae_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la interpretationis_fw-la linea_fw-la secundum_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la &_o catholici_fw-la sensus_fw-la normam_fw-la dirigatur_fw-la vincent_n lyrinens_fw-la contra_fw-la haeres_fw-la c._n 2._o that_o be_v to_o have_v the_o primitive_a church_n direct_v we_o in_o interpret_n scripture_n where_o it_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o it_o or_o there_o be_v any_o controversy_n about_o its_o meaning_n let_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o as_o sense_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o not_o by_o the_o private_a judgement_n of_o any_o particular_a man_n be_v allow_v and_o agree_v by_o we_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o let_v that_o be_v account_v the_o true_a church_n who_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v most_o conformable_a and_o agreeable_a with_o the_o primitive_a we_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o we_o think_v this_o be_v the_o true_a way_n to_o find_v it_o out_o for_o christian_a faith_n be_v prior_n and_o antecedent_n to_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v first_o know_v and_o suppose_v before_o we_o can_v know_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o church_n for_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n make_v the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o church_n the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o not_o the_o true_a doctrine_n by_o the_o church_n as_o be_v some_o folk_n way_n if_o a_o church_n then_o have_v never_o so_o many_o other_o glorious_a mark_n yet_o if_o it_o have_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n before_o lay_v down_o it_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o if_o it_o have_v never_o so_o true_a a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n derive_v their_o power_n in_o a_o uninterrupted_a line_n from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o if_o it_o have_v not_o a_o true_a succession_n of_o doctrine_n too_o from_o they_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n so_o far_o indeed_o as_o it_o hold_v and_o profess_v the_o common_a christian_a faith_n so_o far_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o so_o far_o we_o allow_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o so_o far_o they_o can_v deny_v we_o to_o be_v one_o neither_o as_o the_o same_o faith_n &_o fundamental_o of_o christianity_n be_v receive_v and_o believe_v by_o both_o of_o we_o for_o this_o faith_n be_v the_o same_o to_o both_o of_o we_o make_v we_o both_o so_o far_o to_o be_v true_a church_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n but_o so_o far_o as_o we_o differ_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n whether_o we_o or_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o have_v this_o determine_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n if_o the_o faith_n then_o and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o we_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n then_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v contrary_a and_o unagreeable_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a than_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n but_o a_o false_a and_o erroneous_a one_o and_o here_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v a_o particular_a enquiry_n and_o examination_n of_o all_o those_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o bring_v each_o of_o they_o to_o the_o test_n and_o trial_n and_o see_v which_o church_n do_v most_o agree_v in_o all_o those_o dispute_v doctrine_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o here_o we_o must_v be_v allow_v to_o examine_v particular_a doctrine_n that_o be_v in_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o every_o private_a christian_a who_o be_v seek_v for_o the_o true_a church_n must_v if_o he_o will_v find_v it_o by_o this_o mark_n of_o bellarmine_n be_v allow_v to_o inquire_v into_o and_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o see_v whether_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o those_o of_o the_o primitive_a or_o no_o and_o this_o he_o must_v do_v by_o his_o private_a judgement_n and_o by_o the_o best_a mean_n and_o help_v he_o can_v use_v to_o this_o purpose_n for_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o suppose_v to_o have_v find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n but_o to_o be_v find_v it_o out_o by_o this_o mark_v give_v of_o it_o and_o till_o he_o have_v find_v it_o out_o by_o this_o mark_n and_o direction_n he_o can_v be_v under_o its_o guidance_n and_o conduct_n so_o that_o he_o must_v make_v use_n of_o his_o own_o reason_n and_o judgement_n at_o least_o till_o he_o have_v thus_o find_v it_o that_o be_v he_o must_v have_v the_o liberty_n to_o search_v and_o inquire_v into_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o judge_v for_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v by_o his_o own_o best_a discretion_n and_o the_o best_a help_n he_o can_v use_v which_o church_n do_v best_a agree_v in_o its_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a and_o according_a as_o he_o shall_v upon_o his_o own_o enquiry_n and_o examination_n find_v so_o he_o must_v choose_v that_o church_n which_o he_o think_v be_v the_o true_a but_o he_o must_v not_o give_v himself_o up_o to_o the_o absolute_a guidance_n and_o direction_n of_o any_o church_n at_o least_o till_o he_o have_v by_o this_o way_n find_v out_o the_o true_a which_o be_v another_o manifest_a advantage_n that_o we_o have_v by_o this_o note_n against_o our_o adversary_n who_o be_v rather_o for_o bear_v man_n down_o with_o the_o bold_a pretence_n of_o infallibility_n and_o the_o terrible_a fright_n of_o damnation_n out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n rather_o than_o suffer_v they_o according_a to_o this_o true_a method_n to_o find_v it_o out_o and_o as_o he_o must_v thus_o use_v his_o own_o judgement_n in_o a_o impartial_a search_n
into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o will_v have_v as_o many_o inconvenience_n in_o it_o i_o fear_v as_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o object_n against_o search_v to_o this_o end_n into_o the_o scripture_n so_o he_o must_v examine_v all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n that_o be_v controvert_v between_o both_o church_n to_o see_v which_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a for_o he_o can_v know_v this_o in_o the_o lump_n and_o by_o the_o gross_a and_o to_o tell_v he_o as_o they_o sometime_o do_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o their_o church_n to_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o that_o the_o present_a age_n can_v not_o alter_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o forego_n and_o so_o upward_o this_o be_v not_o to_o make_v the_o primitive_a faith_n a_o note_n of_o the_o present_a church_n but_o to_o prevent_v all_o enquiry_n about_o this_o note_n and_o to_o make_v it_o whole_o useless_a and_o insignificant_a he_o that_o will_v therefore_o make_v use_n of_o this_o mark_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n by_o must_v be_v suppose_v and_o allow_v to_o inquire_v into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n about_o all_o those_o particular_a controversy_n and_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o must_v not_o have_v his_o enquiry_n stop_v and_o preclude_v by_o any_o general_a pretence_n of_o the_o infallibility_n either_o of_o oral_a tradition_n or_o of_o the_o present_a church_n but_o must_v free_o and_o impartial_o examine_v the_o particular_a doctrine_n that_o be_v controvert_v that_o so_o he_o may_v bring_v every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o primitive_a faith_n and_o try_v whether_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o or_o no_o and_o according_a as_o he_o find_v this_o that_o be_v whatsoever_o church_n he_o find_v to_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a in_o all_o the_o particular_a point_n of_o difference_n that_o he_o must_v conclude_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n from_o this_o note_n give_v of_o it_o our_o adversary_n do_v not_o usual_o care_v to_o enter_v into_o particular_a point_n of_o controversy_n wherein_o they_o be_v very_o sensible_a they_o shall_v be_v soon_o foil_v and_o baffle_v and_o therefore_o they_o general_o wave_v those_o which_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v make_v more_o plain_a and_o evident_a to_o most_o man_n capacity_n and_o they_o choose_v rather_o to_o dispute_v and_o wrangle_v about_o more_o general_a and_o intricate_a matter_n in_o which_o there_o be_v some_o more_o room_n to_o cavil_v and_o to_o amuse_v and_o perplex_v themselves_o and_o other_o with_o seem_a difficulty_n so_o that_o though_o particular_a controversy_n may_v be_v make_v very_o plain_a and_o it_o appear_v often_o in_o they_o as_o clear_v almost_o as_o the_o light_n on_o which_o side_n the_o truth_n be_v as_o whether_o prayer_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n whether_o the_o communion_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o both_o kind_n whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v read_v by_o the_o people_n and_o the_o like_a yet_o to_o avoid_v those_o and_o to_o prevent_v the_o disadvantage_n of_o such_o manifest_a and_o particular_a point_n they_o carry_v the_o dispute_v off_o to_o other_o thing_n and_o run_v into_o the_o general_a controversy_n of_o infallibility_n and_o church-authority_n and_o resolution_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o judge_n in_o controversy_n and_o the_o like_a and_o here_o they_o think_v there_o be_v more_o room_n for_o cavil_v and_o sophistry_n and_o they_o can_v hereby_o lead_v man_n if_o not_o into_o scepticism_n and_o doubtfulness_n yet_o into_o a_o maze_n and_o labyrinth_n where_o they_o shall_v not_o so_o easy_o get_v out_o which_o way_n of_o they_o seem_v to_o i_o just_a as_o if_o a_o person_n in_o a_o plain_a controversy_n about_o weight_n or_o measure_n which_o be_v otherwise_o easy_a to_o be_v determine_v shall_v to_o avoid_v that_o think_v fit_a to_o run_v into_o the_o perplex_a dispute_n what_o be_v the_o true_a standard_n of_o weight_n and_o measure_n or_o everlasting_o wrangle_v about_o that_o question_n whether_o matter_n consist_v of_o divisible_a or_o indivisible_a part_n and_o because_o he_o can_v raise_v difficulty_n here_o and_o keep_v up_o a_o long_a and_o intricate_a controversy_n about_o those_o matter_n will_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o yield_v that_o a_o pound_n be_v heavy_a than_o a_o ounce_n or_o a_o ell_n long_o than_o a_o inch._n i_o can_v but_o think_v that_o some_o of_o our_o particular_a controversy_n may_v be_v almost_o as_o clear_o decide_v as_o those_o two_o and_o that_o the_o run_v into_o some_o general_a one_o be_v as_o remote_a and_o sophistical_a as_o the_o other_o we_o must_v therefore_o according_a to_o this_o note_n of_o the_o church_n not_o be_v foreprize_v or_o prevent_v with_o any_o general_a and_o more_o perplex_a dispute_n but_o we_o must_v fair_o examine_v all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o see_v whether_o they_o be_v agreeable_a with_o those_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o no_o before_o we_o can_v find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n at_o present_a not_o that_o the_o true_a church_n we_o be_v to_o look_v for_o be_v confine_v to_o any_o particular_a place_n or_o country_n but_o like_o a_o great_a homogenial_a body_n every_o part_n of_o which_o be_v of_o the_o fame_n nature_n with_o the_o whole_a wherever_o the_o true_a primitive_a faith_n be_v profess_v in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o all_o particular_a church_n be_v unite_v together_o in_o the_o same_o bond_n of_o faith_n do_v make_v up_o the_o catholic_n church_n over_o all_o the_o world._n if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o particular_a church_n upon_o the_o whole_a earth_n that_o do_v profess_v this_o true_a faith_n that_o alone_o may_v be_v call_v the_o catholic_n church_n because_o that_o alone_o have_v that_o catholic_n faith_n which_o do_v proper_o make_v and_o constitute_v the_o true_a church_n but_o this_o faith_n be_v common_a to_o a_o great_a many_o particular_a church_n this_o make_v they_o to_o be_v all_o true_a and_o all_o catholic_n as_o to_o faith_n but_o as_o to_o place_n it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o call_v any_o one_o catholic_n and_o as_o absurd_a as_o to_o call_v a_o part_n the_o whole_a in_o that_o sense_n no_o church_n be_v catholic_n in_o the_o other_o every_o church_n be_v that_o hold_v the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n we_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o seek_v for_o any_o particular_a church_n that_o shall_v usurp_v to_o itself_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n in_o exclusion_n to_o all_o other_o but_o for_o any_o church_n that_o maintain_v the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n profess_v by_o the_o primitive_a which_o upon_o that_o account_n be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o acknowledge_v so_o by_o this_o mark_n which_o be_v here_o give_v of_o it_o to_o find_v out_o such_o a_o one_o and_o to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o other_o we_o must_v very_o careful_o inquire_v into_o all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n and_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v hold_v by_o it_o and_o see_v whether_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o according_a to_o this_o method_n and_o save_v to_o ourselves_o all_o the_o forementioned_a advantage_n of_o it_o we_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o have_v the_o difference_n adjust_v between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o have_v it_o decide_v by_o this_o note_n whether_o we_o or_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v whether_o we_o or_o they_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o controversy_n between_o we_o do_v most_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o here_o be_v a_o very_a large_a scope_n offer_v to_o i_o and_o what_o have_v take_v up_o a_o great_a many_o volume_n on_o both_o side_n so_o that_o to_o most_o people_n scripture_n one_o will_v think_v shall_v be_v a_o short_a and_o a_o easy_a and_o therefore_o a_o better_a way_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n by_o but_o since_o our_o adversary_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o leave_v the_o case_n to_o that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o accept_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v judge_n between_o we_o and_o as_o have_v be_v often_o offer_v before_o by_o bishop_n jewel_n and_o other_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o willing_a to_o stand_v to_o its_o award_n and_o decision_n for_o however_o some_o few_o divine_n of_o the_o reformation_n before_o they_o be_v so_o well_o acquaint_v with_o antiquity_n and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o so_o well_o distinguish_v what_o be_v genuine_a from_o what_o be_v spurious_a and_o corrupt_a by_o your_o church_n be_v at_o first_o especial_o more_o jealous_a and_o distrustful_a than_o they_o need_v to_o have_v be_v of_o it_o and_o unwilling_a to_o
and_o receive_v as_o such_o when_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v so_o before_o and_o how_o then_o do_v that_o differ_v from_o make_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n speak_v plain_o out_o though_o against_o his_o own_o note_n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o latter_a time_n have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o explain_v and_o declare_v but_o constitute_v and_o command_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith_n pontif._n faith_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la sum._n pontif._n if_o the_o present_a church_n have_v a_o power_n to_o make_v more_o doctrine_n and_o article_n be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n than_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n than_o it_o may_v make_v addition_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o make_v that_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v at_o one_o time_n which_o be_v not_o at_o another_o if_o it_o have_v not_o this_o power_n let_v they_o declare_v it_o and_o not_o count_v other_o heretic_n who_o receive_v all_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a council_n and_o believe_v all_o those_o doctrine_n that_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n in_o all_o place_n and_o at_o all_o time_n ever_o hold_v here_o with_o lyrinensis_n we_o fix_v and_o set_v our_o foot_n and_o here_o we_o resolve_v to_o stand_v and_o keep_v our_o ground_n and_o not_o be_v move_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n that_o shall_v blow_v out_o of_o a_o new_a quarter_n and_o that_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o present_a church_n shall_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n when_o it_o be_v never_o so_o declare_v by_o the_o primitive_a to_o say_v that_o they_o have_v make_v no_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o church_n but_o only_o the_o same_o article_n make_v explicit_fw-la which_o be_v implicit_a before_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v no_o new_a man_n in_o the_o world_n since_o adam_n or_o noah_n but_o only_o the_o same_o man_n that_o be_v before_o implicit_a in_o their_o loin_n be_v now_o explicit_o bear_v into_o the_o world._n thus_o the_o church_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o fruitful_a in_o produce_v doctrine_n and_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o never_o be_v before_o in_o the_o church_n yet_o make_v nothing_o new_a and_o however_o spurious_a its_o doctrine_n may_v be_v and_o however_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o forefather_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o species_n i'faith_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v but_o a_o embryo_n or_o like_o a_o small_a seed_n or_o kernel_n implicit_o contain_v all_o the_o part_n entire_a but_o in_o little_a but_o when_o it_o be_v grow_v up_o and_o enlarge_v by_o the_o explicit_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n than_o it_o may_v swell_v into_o a_o mighty_a bigness_n and_o increase_v even_o into_o the_o large_a tridentine_a bulk_n and_o be_v it_o never_o so_o unlike_o the_o former_a yet_o it_o must_v be_v call_v the_o same_o still_o but_o if_o this_o implicit_a faith_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o primitive_a church_n why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v so_o for_o the_o present_a and_o what_o need_n have_v we_o of_o a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n to_o save_v we_o now_o than_o they_o have_v to_o save_v they_o then_o all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v at_o all_o time_n and_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o we_o must_v be_v now_o oblige_v to_o a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n and_o a_o more_o implicit_a obedience_n than_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v ever_o acquaint_v with_o but_o after_o all_o i_o hope_v those_o doctrine_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o then_o implicit_o believe_v by_o it_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o i_o be_o sure_a most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o different_a from_o the_o reform_a be_v not_o her_o implicit_a doctrine_n but_o unless_o error_n may_v be_v fold_v up_o with_o truth_n and_o one_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n may_v be_v involve_v in_o the_o other_o the_o late_a corruption_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o her_o trent_n article_n be_v no_o way_n contain_v in_o the_o quite_o different_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o thus_o because_o i_o have_v go_v too_o far_o with_o this_o discourse_n i_o must_v abrupt_o take_v leave_n of_o bellarmin_n and_o his_o church_n though_o i_o resolve_v by_o god_n grace_n to_o keep_v always_o to_o this_o his_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o to_o that_o church_n in_o which_o i_o be_o which_o be_v the_o most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o primitive_a of_o any_o in_o the_o world_n both_o as_o to_o doctrine_n and_o every_o thing_n else_o the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o seven_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n septima_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la vnio_n membrorum_fw-la 〈…〉_o inter_fw-la se_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la capite_fw-la bellar._n l._n four_o c._n 10._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la may_v 26._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n the_o church_n as_o the_o cardinal_n observe_v be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n one_o body_n one_o spouse_n one_o sheepfold_a but_o he_o that_o infer_v from_o hence_o that_o unity_n be_v a_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n aught_o to_o be_v very_o well_o assure_v that_o the_o head_n and_o member_n be_v unite_v nowhere_o but_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o harlot_n can_v be_v one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o spouse_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o world_n have_v hitherto_o be_v persuade_v that_o bare_a unity_n be_v a_o character_n to_o be_v find_v upon_o society_n of_o different_a nature_n and_o contrary_a design_n that_o of_o itself_o it_o infer_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a and_o may_v belong_v to_o a_o body_n of_o rebel_n no_o less_o than_o to_o a_o army_n of_o loyal_a subject_n unity_n be_v then_o indeed_o a_o good_a mark_n when_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n when_o the_o term_n of_o union_n be_v so_o for_o which_o reason_n the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o excellent_a because_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o follow_v that_o truth_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o these_o be_v best_a preserve_v and_o maintain_v by_o union_n among_o those_o who_o follow_v they_o for_o which_o reason_n also_o it_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o gospel_n with_o variety_n of_o expression_n but_o to_o argue_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o union_n of_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o head_n be_v a_o proper_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v just_a as_o if_o i_o shall_v conclude_v upon_o see_v a_o thousand_o man_n march_v in_o good_a order_n and_o with_o equal_a pace_n after_o their_o leader_n that_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v be_v go_v to_o york_n notwithstanding_o therefore_o this_o argument_n from_o unity_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o church_n the_o cardinal_n do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o leave_v his_o mark_n so_o very_o loose_a and_o common_a but_o slip_v into_o the_o mention_n of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v as_o he_o pretend_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o head_n with_o which_o the_o member_n be_v unite_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o as_o for_o their_o union_n among_o themselves_o he_o afterward_o prove_v that_o all_o catholic_n must_v needs_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n since_o they_o all_o submit_v their_o own_o sense_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o chief_a pastor_n guide_v the_o church_n from_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o other_o pastor_n so_o that_o now_o we_o know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o their_o head_n and_o among_o themselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o their_o head_n and_o their_o union_n among_o themselves_o in_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o teach_v from_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n etc._n etc._n which_o note_n do_v for_o its_o part_n make_v good_a what_o be_v observe_v at_o first_o concern_v the_o general_a design_n of_o these_o note_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o describe_v to_o we_o the_o proper_a character_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n as_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n whatever_o the_o cardinal_n insinuate_v at_o first_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o sensible_a that_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n
with_o the_o head_n and_o among_o themselves_o be_v too_o large_a a_o note_n to_o fit_v no_o other_o society_n but_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n now_o if_o in_o restrain_v his_o note_n he_o have_v understand_v christ_n by_o the_o head_n and_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n to_o one_o another_o a_o agreement_n in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n this_o indeed_o will_v have_v serve_v for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o then_o this_o be_v too_o large_a for_o the_o cardinal_n purpose_n which_o be_v to_o find_v no_o other_o church_n to_o be_v true_a but_o the_o roman_a and_o therefore_o by_o the_o head_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n a_o agreement_n in_o all_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v that_o this_o will_v mark_v all_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o but_o it_o will_v most_o undoubted_o mark_v all_o other_o christian_n out_o of_o the_o only_a true_a church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o admirable_a reason_n to_o which_o it_o lead_v that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o its_o head_n and_o for_o its_o faith_n profess_v the_o doctrine_n whatever_o it_o be_v that_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n quod_fw-la erat_fw-la demonstrandum_fw-la and_o if_o the_o cardinal_n have_v leave_v the_o matter_n thus_o in_o shorf_n he_o have_v in_o my_o mind_n do_v better_o for_o his_o church_n and_o his_o reason_n have_v be_v less_o exceptionable_a than_o he_o have_v make_v it_o in_o the_o pursuance_n of_o his_o enlargement_n when_o a_o man_n have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o untractable_a piece_n of_o matter_n it_o often_o happen_v that_o the_o more_o he_o strive_v to_o fashion_v it_o to_o his_o own_o purpose_n the_o far_o he_o be_v from_o it_o and_o so_o this_o great_a man_n by_o labour_v overmuch_o to_o make_v this_o his_o mark_n of_o unity_n utter_o unserviceable_a to_o any_o other_o church_n have_v give_v it_o that_o figure_n at_o last_o which_o make_v it_o unfit_a for_o his_o own_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o convenient_a place_n for_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v out_o these_o three_o thing_n i._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n ii_o that_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v it_o not_o iii_o that_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v and_o that_o in_o a_o much_o great_a degree_n than_o they_o i._o that_o the_o unity_n here_o offer_v be_v no_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o shall_v show_v concern_v both_o his_o instance_n of_o it_o and_o first_o concern_v union_n with_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o pretence_n that_o have_v neither_o scripture_n reason_n nor_o antiquity_n for_o it_o but_o all_o against_o it_o 1._o for_o scripture_n the_o cardinal_n offer_v not_o any_o proof_n from_o thence_o of_o his_o presumption_n which_o yet_o have_v be_v very_o requisite_a to_o a_o point_n of_o so_o vast_a a_o consequence_n if_o the_o scripture_n have_v afford_v any_o testimony_n to_o his_o purpose_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o centre_n of_o its_o unity_n that_o union_n to_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o essential_a character_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o depend_v upon_o he_o but_o that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v not_o give_v we_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o perfect_o unaccountable_a that_o the_o very_a silence_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o high_a nature_n be_v to_o we_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n that_o the_o apostle_n know_v nothing_o of_o any_o such_o constitution_n especial_o since_o they_o do_v not_o forget_v to_o make_v plain_a and_o frequent_a mention_n of_o another_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o all_o the_o member_n be_v to_o be_v unite_v viz._n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o tell_v we_o 23._o eph._n i_o 20_o 22_o 23._o that_o when_o god_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n that_o as_o there_o be_v many_o member_n in_o one_o body_n so_o we_o be_v many_o 5._o rom._n twelve_o 4_o 5._o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n that_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n 27._o 1_o cor._n twelve_o 12_o 27._o i.e._n christ_n and_o the_o church_n the_o whole_a be_v denominate_v from_o the_o head_n for_o we_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v tell_v that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n 16._o eph._n four_o 16._o even_o christ_n 23._o verse_n 23._o from_o who_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v fit_o join_v together_o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n 18._o col._n i._n 18._o and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n may_v be_v add_v now_o when_o the_o church_n be_v so_o frequent_o declare_v to_o be_v one_o body_n and_o to_o this_o one_o body_n one_o head_n be_v so_o frequent_o assign_v and_o no_o more_o what_o can_v any_o man_n who_o be_v not_o possess_v with_o prejudice_n make_v of_o this_o but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o head_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o he_o who_o be_v so_o often_o mention_v as_o such_o and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o any_o man_n go_v about_o to_o add_v another_o head_n to_o the_o church_n he_o may_v if_o he_o please_v find_v out_o another_o church_n for_o the_o head_n nor_o do_v it_o help_v at_o all_o that_o they_o pretend_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v but_o the_o vicarious_a and_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n since_o if_o without_o union_n to_o he_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v no_o part_n in_o christ_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o pretend_v vicarious_a head_n shall_v have_v be_v as_o plain_o and_o frequent_o express_v as_o we_o know_v the_o true_a and_o real_a head_n to_o have_v be_v nay_o it_o be_v something_o more_o necessary_a since_o a_o very_a slender_a intimation_n may_v have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n 18._o col._n i._n 15_o 18._o by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v and_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n consist_v be_v also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n 14._o ver._n 14._o that_o he_o in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n who_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n and_o for_o our_o sake_n humble_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n and_o be_v exalt_v to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n unto_o his_o church_n he_o i_o say_v in_o who_o infinite_a power_n and_o goodness_n meet_v but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v another_o head_n give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o which_o be_v no_o less_o necessary_a than_o union_n to_o christ_n himself_o and_o that_o this_o catholic_n head_n shall_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o sinful_a man_n and_o he_o very_o often_o none_o of_o the_o best_a this_o be_v so_o far_o remove_v from_o self-evidence_n or_o even_a probability_n that_o it_o certain_o need_v very_o express_a mention_n if_o not_o frequent_a inculcation_n now_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v frequent_o mention_v as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o in_o comparison_n need_v not_o to_o be_v mention_v at_o all_o and_o that_o no_o mention_n at_o all_o shall_v be_v make_v of_o another_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o need_v it_o very_o much_o be_v for_o they_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o who_o make_v union_n to_o this_o late_a head_n no_o less_o necessary_a to_o a_o part_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o union_n to_o the_o former_a which_o account_n will_v be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v give_v inasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o this_o pretend_a head_n where_o there_o be_v the_o most_o fair_a and_o invite_a occasion_n for_o it_o that_o can_v be_v well_o imagine_v thus_o st._n paul_n show_v what_o gift_n christ_n bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n after_o his_o ascension_n say_v he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n etc._n eph._n four_o 11_o 12_o etc._n etc._n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o
church_n it_o be_v agree_v of_o all_o side_n that_o it_o be_v only_o to_o the_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o i_o must_v be_v certain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n before_o i_o can_v be_v ascertain_v which_o church_n be_v infallible_a see_v therefore_o that_o every_o true_a note_n be_v inseparable_a to_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o notify_v before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o i_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n which_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o this_o note_n of_o not_o err_v i_o must_v have_v very_o good_a assurance_n not_o only_o that_o my_o church_n do_v not_o err_v at_o present_a but_o also_o that_o not_o to_o err_v be_v always_o inseparable_a to_o it_o both_o for_o the_o time_n past_a and_o the_o time_n to_o come_v see_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o one_o church_n now_o in_o be_v of_o which_o we_o can_v be_v rational_o assure_v as_o to_o this_o matter_n the_o necessary_a consequence_n be_v that_o by_o this_o note_n no_o man_n can_v certain_o discover_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o now_o have_v prove_v that_o according_a to_o the_o true_a property_n of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n this_o of_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n as_o bellarmin_n explain_v it_o be_v no_o true_a note_n for_o a_o honest_a enquirer_n to_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n by_o i_o proceed_v iii_o to_o inquire_v in_o what_o sense_n this_o be_v a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o short_a if_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o understand_v profess_v all_o the_o necessary_a and_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o admit_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o christian_a worship_n and_o discipline_n this_o wherever_o it_o be_v be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o it_o as_o a_o true_a church_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v accidental_a to_o it_o be_v separable_a from_o it_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v separable_a from_o it_o it_o may_v have_v or_o not_o have_v and_o yet_o be_v a_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o that_o therefore_o which_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n may_v appertain_v to_o a_o false_a church_n as_o well_o as_o a_o true_a but_o to_o say_v that_o that_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o a_o true_a church_n be_v a_o downright_a contradiction_n if_o therefore_o we_o will_v have_v such_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n as_o we_o may_v certain_o depend_v upon_o we_o must_v fetch_v they_o from_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o we_o must_v first_o state_n what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a what_o be_v the_o true_a note_n of_o it_o now_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v necessary_a to_o constitute_v a_o true_a christian_a church_n may_v be_v easy_o collect_v by_o consider_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o true_a christian_a for_o a_o true_a christian_a church_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o society_n of_o true_a christian_n and_o see_v that_o christianity_n consist_v of_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o law_n of_o worship_n and_o discipline_n he_o only_o be_v a_o true_a christian_n that_o own_v and_o receive_v christianity_n in_o all_o these_o part_n of_o it_o that_o be_v who_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o true_a christian_a faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n and_o consequent_o that_o must_v be_v a_o true_a christian_a church_n or_o society_n of_o true_a christian_n which_o profess_v all_o the_o essential_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o receive_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o christian_a worship_n and_o discipline_n wherever_o therefore_o i_o find_v a_o religious_a society_n of_o man_n profess_v all_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n worship_v the_o one_o god_n through_o the_o one_o mediator_n communicate_v in_o the_o true_a christian_a sacrament_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o true_a christian_a discipline_n due_o administer_v by_o true_a christian_a pastor_n and_o governor_n there_o i_o be_o certain_a i_o have_v find_v a_o true_a church_n if_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o that_o constitute_v a_o true_a church_n wherefore_o before_o we_o can_v know_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n we_o must_v be_v right_o imform_v what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v and_o before_o we_o can_v state_n what_o a_o true_a church_n be_v we_o must_v learn_v what_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n and_o discipline_n be_v because_o these_o be_v the_o essential_a ingredient_n of_o which_o a_o true_a church_n be_v compose_v and_o when_o we_o have_v learn_v what_o these_o be_v by_o they_o we_o may_v certain_o discover_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o no._n if_o therefore_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o understand_v the_o public_a profession_n and_o admission_n of_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o christian_a faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o the_o only_a certain_a note_n of_o it_o because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n but_o what_o be_v essential_a to_o it_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o essential_a to_o it_o but_o what_o this_o note_n comprehend_v wherever_o this_o be_v there_o be_v the_o entire_a essence_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n upon_o earth_n that_o have_v it_o that_o will_v be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o if_o there_o be_v ten_o thousand_o church_n agree_v in_o it_o there_o will_v be_v ten_o thousand_o true_a church_n so_o that_o whereas_o all_o other_o note_n be_v separable_a from_o a_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o may_v direct_v we_o to_o a_o false_a church_n instead_o of_o a_o true_a this_o be_v no_o more_o separable_a from_o it_o than_o a_o true_a man_n be_v from_o the_o human_a nature_n and_o if_o i_o have_v find_v a_o church_n that_o have_v in_o it_o all_o the_o other_o note_n of_o bellarmin_n except_v this_o i_o shall_v still_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o a_o true_a church_n as_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o i_o have_v find_v a_o church_n that_o want_v all_o the_o rest_n but_o this_o i_o shall_v nevertheless_o sit_v down_o full_o satisfy_v of_o its_o truth_n and_o seek_v no_o further_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v a_o brief_a account_n in_o what_o sense_n sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o by_o this_o our_o church_n be_v willing_a to_o be_v try_v by_o any_o honest_a and_o ingenuous_a enquirer_n who_o business_n it_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o truth_n and_o not_o for_o gain_n and_o preferment_n and_o if_o upon_o examination_n he_o can_v find_v in_o it_o as_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o may_v if_o he_o examine_v fair_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o that_o faith_n and_o worship_n and_o discipline_n which_o the_o scripture_n teach_v and_o the_o primitive_a age_n profess_v and_o embrace_v in_o god_n name_n let_v he_o seek_v far_o abroad_o but_o if_o after_o he_o have_v miss_v of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o shall_v happen_v to_o find_v it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n import_v he_o as_o much_o as_o his_o soul_n be_v worth_a to_o inquire_v into_o one_o point_n more_o viz._n whether_o he_o seek_v it_o by_o his_o reason_n or_o by_o his_o interest_n and_o now_o i_o proceed_v iu._n and_o last_o to_o show_v that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v by_o this_o note_n in_o which-soev_a of_o the_o two_o sense_n we_o understand_v it_o for_o if_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o mean_v with_o bellarmin_n a_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n without_o any_o the_o least_o intermixture_n of_o error_n before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a we_o have_v find_v they_o true_a church_n by_o it_o we_o must_v be_v very_o well_o assure_v concern_v the_o profession_n of_o that_o church_n which_o we_o take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o it_o be_v in_o all_o particular_n true_a without_o any_o the_o least_o ingredient_n of_o error_n or_o if_o by_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n we_o only_o mean_v the_o profession_n of_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o christian_a faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o it_o we_o must_v be_v very_o well_o assure_v not_o only_o that_o there_o be_v such_o essential_a principle_n and_o what_o they_o be_v but_o also_o that_o they_o be_v true_a for_o unless_o we_o certain_o know_v that_o there_o be_v such_o principle_n and_o what_o
they_o be_v we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a whether_o any_o one_o church_n in_o the_o world_n do_v profess_v they_o or_o no_o for_o how_o can_v we_o know_v whether_o or_o no_o a_o church_n profess_v we_o know_v not_o what_o and_o unless_o we_o certain_o know_v that_o these_o principle_n be_v true_a we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a whether_o that_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o profess_v they_o for_o see_v it_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a principle_n of_o religion_n that_o make_v a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v whether_o any_o church_n be_v a_o true_a church_n till_o we_o know_v whether_o the_o principle_n it_o profess_v be_v true_a so_o that_o before_o a_o man_n can_v be_v secure_a that_o he_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n he_o must_v be_v certain_a either_o that_o every_o thing_n it_o profess_v be_v true_a or_o at_o least_o that_o the_o main_a and_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o its_o profession_n be_v true_a neither_o of_o which_o he_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o first_o she_o decry_v man_n private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o utter_o insufficient_a to_o make_v any_o certain_a distinction_n of_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n second_o she_o allow_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n without_o the_o true_a church_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n three_o she_o resolve_v all_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n four_o she_o authorise_v the_o true_a church_n to_o impose_v upon_o we_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o believe_v such_o thing_n as_o before_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v first_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n decry_v man_n private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o utter_o insufficient_a to_o make_v any_o certain_a distinction_n of_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n see_v we_o be_v to_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n by_o note_n our_o certainty_n that_o we_o have_v find_v it_o must_v whole_o depend_v upon_o our_o certainty_n that_o we_o have_v find_v in_o it_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o though_o there_o be_v no_o one_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n of_o which_o we_o be_v more_o concern_v to_o be_v certain_a than_o that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n and_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o it_o because_o no_o less_o than_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n depend_v upon_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v only_o our_o own_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n that_o by_o apply_v the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n can_v ascertain_v we_o in_o this_o point_n for_o while_o we_o be_v in_o quest_n of_o the_o true_a church_n we_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o find_v it_o but_o by_o carry_v the_o note_n of_o it_o along_o with_o we_o and_o by_o examine_v and_o judge_v by_o our_o own_o private_a discretion_n which_o church_n these_o note_n do_v belong_v to_o either_o our_o private_a discretion_n be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o it_o be_v not_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v it_o must_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o in_o all_o other_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n because_o one_o of_o the_o note_n by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o a_o principal_a one_o too_o be_v sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n or_o a_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n at_o least_o in_o all_o necessary_a point_n but_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a which_o church_n this_o note_n belong_v to_o we_o must_v be_v thorough_o satisfy_v in_o our_o own_o private_a discretion_n what_o this_o unerring_a profession_n be_v which_o we_o can_v never_o be_v till_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o and_o when_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o this_o we_o be_v certain_a at_o least_o as_o to_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o true_a religion_n which_o must_v all_o be_v include_v in_o every_o unerring_a profession_n of_o it_o so_o that_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n we_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n and_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o this_o we_o must_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o those_o particular_a doctrine_n whereof_o its_o profession_n be_v compose_v and_o of_o this_o we_o have_v as_o yet_o no_o other_o way_n to_o be_v certain_a but_o only_o by_o our_o own_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n because_o till_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n its_o impossible_a we_o shall_v conduct_v ourselves_o by_o its_o authority_n and_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o true_a church_n authority_n we_o have_v nothing_o to_o conduct_v we_o but_o our_o own_o private_a discretion_n either_o this_o our_o private_a discretion_n therefore_o be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n whereof_o a_o unerring_a profession_n of_o religion_n be_v compose_v or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o it_o be_v it_o must_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assertain_v we_o as_o to_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n if_o it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n affirm_v it_o be_v not_o it_o be_v impossible_a we_o shall_v ever_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n again_o either_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v allow_v that_o certainty_n in_o all_o at_o least_o in_o all_o necessary_a point_v of_o religion_n be_v attainable_a by_o the_o free_a and_o honest_a use_n of_o our_o own_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n which_o as_o i_o shall_v show_v by_o and_o by_o she_o can_v never_o allow_v without_o undermine_v she_o own_o foundation_n or_o she_o must_v leave_v man_n hover_v in_o eternal_a uncertainty_n as_o to_o one_o of_o the_o most_o necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n viz._n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n second_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n without_o the_o true_a church_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n see_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o natural_a but_o entire_o found_v upon_o divine_a institution_n this_o question_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v resolve_v by_o principle_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o principle_n of_o revelation_n and_o therefore_o without_o some_o reveal_v rule_n which_o be_v every_o way_n sufficient_a to_o guide_v and_o direct_v our_o private_a discretion_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o without_o such_o a_o rule_n we_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n to_o go_v by_o which_o in_o this_o enquiry_n be_v utter_o insufficient_a to_o direct_v we_o but_o while_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v no_o other_o reveal_v rule_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o our_o enquiry_n after_o it_o but_o only_o that_o of_o scripture_n for_o as_o for_o tradition_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o sole_a conservator_n of_o it_o and_o that_o though_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o divine_a revelation_n yet_o no_o man_n be_v oblige_v any_o far_a to_o believe_v it_o than_o the_o true_a church_n have_v define_v and_o declare_v it_o and_o see_v i_o can_v have_v ho_o certainty_n what_o be_v a_o true_a tradition_n till_o such_o time_n as_o i_o be_o get_v into_o the_o true_a church_n how_o can_v tradition_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o i_o while_o i_o be_o out_o of_o it_o or_o how_o can_v that_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o my_o faith_n whilst_o i_o be_o in_o quest_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o i_o have_v no_o other_o obligation_n to_o believe_v but_o only_o the_o true_a church_n authority_n whilst_o therefore_o i_o be_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o only_a rule_n i_o have_v to_o go_v by_o in_o my_o inquiry_n after_o it_o be_v scripture_n and_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tell_v i_o be_v insufficient_a both_o because_o it_o be_v not_o full_a enough_o and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o clear_a enough_o which_o if_o true_a i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a i_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n one_a she_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o full_a enough_o as_o not_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n but_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a unwritten_a tradition_n in_o the_o church_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o it_o by_o which_o its_o defect_n be_v supply_v and_o if_o so_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a i_o
shall_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n for_o since_o according_a to_o this_o note_n that_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o uner_o profess_v all_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n when_o i_o have_v find_v a_o church_n which_o profess_v all_o such_o necessary_a doctrine_n as_o be_v in_o scripture_n i_o can_v be_v secure_a that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n suppose_v there_o be_v other_o necessary_a doctrine_n out_o of_o scripture_n viz._n in_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n because_o then_o the_o profession_n of_o these_o will_v be_v altogether_o as_o necessary_a to_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n as_o the_o profession_n of_o those_o all_o that_o the_o scripture_n can_v satisfy_v i_o in_o be_v only_o this_o whether_o such_o a_o church_n profess_v all_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n in_o scripture_n but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o necessary_a doctrine_n out_o of_o scripture_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o profession_n of_o they_o be_v as_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o profession_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o therefore_o before_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n i_o must_v be_v full_o satisfy_v that_o it_o profess_v both_o which_o i_o can_v never_o be_v unless_o i_o have_v some_o other_o rule_n to_o go_v by_o beside_o this_o of_o scripture_n 2_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o sufficient_a rule_n in_o respect_n of_o clearness_n the_o sense_n of_o it_o be_v so_o obscure_o express_v that_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a what_o it_o be_v without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o if_o true_a it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a for_o one_o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n ever_o to_o find_v it_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n for_o according_a to_o this_o note_n that_o only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n at_o least_o in_o any_o necessary_a point_n either_o as_o to_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o manner_n but_o before_o i_o can_v know_v whether_o any_o church_n do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n i_o must_v be_v certain_o inform_v what_o the_o true_a profession_n be_v or_o what_o be_v those_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o which_o this_o true_a profession_n consist_v as_o to_o which_o the_o scripture_n can_v never_o certain_o inform_v i_o if_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o clear_a for_o if_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a what_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o while_o i_o be_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o shall_v ever_o be_v certain_a of_o its_o sense_n as_o to_o all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o the_o true_a profession_n of_o religion_n contain_v so_o that_o according_a to_o this_o principle_n the_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o one_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o it_o be_v perfect_o useless_a to_o he_o in_o his_o enquiry_n after_o it_o for_o either_o it_o can_v certain_o direct_v he_o to_o the_o true_a church_n or_o it_o can_v if_o it_o can_v it_o must_v be_v sufficient_o clear_a to_o inform_v he_o of_o its_o own_o sense_n without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n concern_v all_o those_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n whereof_o the_o unerring_a profession_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v compose_v and_o if_o so_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v erroneous_a if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v it_o serve_v unless_o it_o be_v to_o lead_v he_o into_o a_o endless_a maze_n of_o uncertainty_n wherein_o the_o further_o he_o wander_v the_o more_o he_o will_v lose_v himself_o so_o that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v have_v the_o misfortune_n to_o be_v bear_v and_o breed_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o a_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a communion_n and_o be_v inquire_v his_o way_n in_o by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n he_o have_v no_o other_o rule_n to_o instruct_v and_o inform_v he_o what_o this_o unerring_a profession_n be_v but_o only_o that_o of_o scripture_n which_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v insufficient_a for_o his_o purpose_n how_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a he_o shall_v ever_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n when_o the_o only_a rule_n he_o have_v whereby_o to_o inquire_v what_o that_o unerring_a profession_n be_v whereby_o he_o be_v to_o seek_v it_o be_v utter_o insufficient_a to_o resolve_v he_o three_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n resolve_v all_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o indeed_o this_o be_v the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o popery_n viz._n that_o the_o only_a ground_n of_o certainty_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a true_a church_n teach_v and_o propose_v propose_v they_o till_o such_o time_n therefore_o as_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n and_o do_v believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o its_o teach_n we_o can_v never_o have_v any_o true_a certainty_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o yet_o before_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n we_o must_v have_v very_o good_a certainty_n as_o to_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n that_o what_o we_o believe_v be_v true_a till_o such_o time_n as_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o can_v we_o ever_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n until_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o do_v not_o err_v in_o its_o profession_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o it_o teach_v and_o profess_v be_v true_a so_o that_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n after_o we_o have_v find_v the_o true_a church_n and_o do_v believe_v upon_o its_o authority_n must_v depend_v upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n while_o we_o be_v seek_v it_o and_o do_v believe_v without_o its_o authority_n because_o before_o we_o can_v believe_v with_o any_o certainty_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n we_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o we_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n till_o we_o be_v first_o certain_a that_o its_o profession_n be_v true_a as_o to_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o it_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_a i_o will_v brief_o represent_v it_o in_o a_o short_a dialogue_n between_o a_o protestant_n and_o a_o papist_n protest_v you_o tell_v i_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a as_o to_z matter_n of_o faith_n unless_o i_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n pap._n i_o do_v so_o and_o upon_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o proposition_n all_o my_o religion_n be_v found_v protest_v but_o i_o beseech_v you_o may_v i_o be_v certain_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o i_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n though_o i_o be_o not_o certain_a whether_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o pap._n to_o what_o purpose_n do_v you_o ask_v this_o question_n protest_v because_o if_o i_o may_v then_o in_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o you_o say_v be_v a_o false_a church_n i_o shall_v be_v as_o certain_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o who_o believe_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o you_o say_v be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n pap._n why_o then_o i_o tell_v you_o you_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o believe_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o church_n unless_o you_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n upon_o who_o authority_n you_o believe_v believe_v they_o protest_v why_o so_o pap._n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o church_n mere_o that_o be_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o true_a church_n otherwise_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o church_n true_a or_o false_a will_v be_v equal_o a_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n and_o therefore_o you_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o church_n upon_o which_o you_o believe_v be_v a_o true_a ground_n of_o certainty_n unless_o you_o be_v first_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n protest_v i_o do_v allow_v your_o reason_n but_o then_o pray_v
a_o unerring_a profession_n but_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a one_o way_n or_o tother_o whether_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a whether_o her_o profession_n be_v true_a or_o false_a till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n there_o be_v some_o article_n in_o her_o profession_n of_o which_o as_o her_o own_o doctor_n confess_v i_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v true_a and_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o one_o article_n in_o her_o profession_n be_v false_a and_o if_o i_o can_v be_v certain_a whether_o she_o err_v in_o her_o profession_n or_o no_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a whether_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o inquire_v whether_o or_o no_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n if_o suppose_v she_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n she_o have_v authority_n from_o god_n to_o oblige_v i_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v to_o day_n that_o which_o i_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v yesterday_o to_o what_o end_n do_v i_o inquire_v whether_o those_o thing_n which_o she_o command_v i_o to_o believe_v be_v true_a or_o false_a if_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v she_o may_v be_v i_o be_o sure_a what_o ever_o she_o command_v i_o to_o believe_v must_v be_v true_a and_o therefore_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o thing_n she_o command_v i_o to_o believe_v be_v false_a for_o how_o can_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o one_o thing_n she_o impose_v be_v false_a when_o for_o all_o i_o yet_o know_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n who_o can_v neither_o impose_v himself_o nor_o authorise_v any_o other_o to_o impose_v on_o i_o that_o which_o be_v false_a have_v authorize_v to_o impose_v it_o and_o if_o till_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o thing_n she_o impose_v be_v false_a how_o can_v i_o ever_o be_v cartain_a by_o this_o note_n of_o a_o unerring_a profession_n whether_o she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o for_o if_o any_o thing_n she_o profess_v or_o impose_v be_v false_a by_o this_o note_n she_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o whether_o any_o thing_n she_o profess_v be_v false_a or_o no_o i_o can_v never_o be_v certain_a till_o i_o be_o first_o certain_a whether_o she_o be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n the_o end_n errata_fw-la in_o the_o seven_o note_n pag._n 137._o the_o first_o cum_fw-la capite_fw-la in_o the_o title_n be_v to_o be_v blot_v out_o p._n 147._o line_n 17._o for_o arian_n r._n asian_n p._n 148._o l._n 6._o f._n complaint_n r._n compliment_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswel_o at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o nine_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n nona_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la efficacia_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la bellarm._n l._n four_o c._n 12._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la june_n 8._o 1687._o jo._n batte_o by_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n must_v be_v mean_v either_o that_o power_n which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o particular_a man_n to_o dispose_v they_o to_o believe_v aright_o and_o to_o live_v well_o or_o else_o that_o success_n which_o it_o have_v in_o draw_v multitude_n outward_o to_o profess_v and_o embrace_v it_o the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v too_o inward_a a_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o know_v what_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v do_v in_o another_o heart_n but_o instead_o of_o that_o apt_a rather_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o what_o it_o have_v do_v in_o his_o own_o the_o second_o which_o must_v be_v that_o the_o cardinal_n mean_v can_v as_o little_a be_v a_o note_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o uncertainty_n and_o if_o we_o can_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o note_n we_o shall_v be_v less_o so_o of_o that_o which_o we_o be_v to_o find_v out_o by_o it_o if_o indeed_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o can_v or_o do_v move_v man_n to_o relinquish_v heathenism_n judaisme_n or_o turcism_n for_o our_o religion_n but_o the_o pure_a efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a good_a note_n of_o the_o excellence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o but_o according_a to_o the_o cardinal_n be_v own_o principle_n it_o can_v be_v no_o note_n that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o preach_v it_o since_o he_o will_v not_o allow_v the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o truth_n to_o signify_v any_o thing_n 2._o lib._n four_o 2._o and_o we_o shall_v have_v much_o less_o reason_n to_o rely_v on_o this_o note_n if_o we_o consider_v how_o many_o other_o thing_n there_o be_v beside_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o have_v and_o may_v convert_v whole_a nation_n to_o it_o let_v we_o therefore_o at_o present_a grant_n in_o general_a the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v true_a that_o such_o conversion_n as_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v of_o be_v make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o they_o be_v make_v pure_o by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o that_o no_o other_o mean_n such_o as_o force_v etc._n etc._n be_v use_v be_v it_o enough_o that_o he_o tell_v we_o so_o the_o bishop_n of_o meaux_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o late_a great_a conversion_n in_o france_n not_o one_o of_o the_o person_n convert_v suffer_v violence_n either_o in_o his_o person_n or_o good_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o suffer_v torment_n 4._o pastoral_n letter_n p._n 3_o 4._o that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v they_o mention_v and_o that_o he_o hear_v other_o bishop_n affirm_v the_o same_o now_o if_o those_o reverend_a prelate_n be_v out_o as_o most_o people_n think_v they_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o which_o they_o may_v be_v eye-witness_n why_o may_v not_o the_o learned_a cardinal_n be_v so_o too_o in_o his_o relation_n of_o conversion_n make_v so_o many_o hundred_o year_n since_o if_o he_o be_v out_o his_o note_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o if_o it_o can_v be_v make_v plain_o to_o appear_v to_o we_o that_o he_o be_v not_o out_o his_o note_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o those_o history_n which_o he_o produce_v want_v that_o certainty_n which_o shall_v give_v we_o satisfaction_n historian_n who_o write_v in_o those_o obscure_a time_n and_o be_v perhaps_o themselves_o converter_n be_v most_o of_o they_o monk_n may_v vainglorious_o ascribe_v much_o to_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o the_o centuriator_n themselves_o who_o he_o so_o often_o quote_v may_v not_o be_v very_o curious_a to_o search_v or_o accurate_a to_o relate_v the_o chief_a motive_n of_o their_o conversion_n because_o they_o write_v before_o the_o cardinal_n have_v make_v efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o little_o dream_v what_o odd_a use_n some_o man_n will_v make_v of_o their_o history_n but_o notwithstanding_o these_o neglect_v and_o disadvantage_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o if_o we_o look_v back_o into_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n nay_o even_o into_o the_o centuriator_n themselves_o we_o shall_v find_v some_o other_o thing_n beside_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n concur_v to_o the_o conversion_n which_o be_v then_o wrought_v a_o instance_n whereof_o to_o pass_v by_o at_o present_a the_o particular_a examination_n of_o those_o mention_v by_o the_o cardinal_n we_o have_v in_o those_o converon_n wrought_v by_o charles_n the_o great_a to_o who_o victorious_a arm_n they_o be_v more_o to_o be_v ascribe_v than_o to_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o for_o not_o to_o mention_v that_o the_o clergy_n be_v not_o then_o in_o any_o great_a capacity_n of_o do_v much_o by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o doctrine_n the_o bishop_n be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v command_v to_o understand_v the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o can_v hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o make_v some_o few_o exhortation_n to_o the_o people_n but_o instead_o of_o that_o turn_v soldier_n to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v somewhat_o towards_o the_o propagate_a their_o religion_n such_o be_v the_o zeal_n of_o that_o prince_n rather_o to_o defend_v and_o increase_v the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n great_a mezeray_fw-fr in_o the_o life_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a than_o to_o enlarge_v his_o own_o empire_n that_o peace_n can_v never_o be_v
obtain_v of_o he_o upon_o other_o their_o term_n than_o that_o those_o who_o be_v conquer_v by_o he_o have_v leave_v their_o idol-worship_n shall_v embrace_v the_o true_a metrop_n krantzius_n praef._n ad_fw-la metrop_n sincere_a and_o eternal_a religion_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o engage_v they_o to_o continue_v firm_a to_o it_o he_o sometime_o take_v hostage_n of_o they_o and_o find_v they_o begin_v to_o apostatise_v which_o they_o as_o often_o do_v as_o they_o think_v themselves_o able_a to_o make_v head_n against_o their_o conqueror_n he_o be_v force_v to_o set_v up_o a_o kind_n of_o inquisition_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o awe_n which_o mezeray_n tell_v we_o last_v in_o westphalia_n till_o the_o 15_o century_n now_o when_o the_o sword_n of_o victorious_a prince_n as_o it_o happen_v in_o this_o case_n have_v make_v way_n for_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o the_o receive_n of_o it_o be_v often_o make_v one_o of_o the_o term_n they_o who_o be_v conquer_v must_v necessary_o submit_v to_o the_o monk_n have_v very_o easy_a work_n whatever_o doctrine_n they_o have_v preach_v may_v have_v be_v efficacious_a under_o such_o circumstance_n so_o that_o when_o there_o be_v with_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n a_o concurrence_n of_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o have_v so_o strong_a a_o influence_n upon_o humane_a nature_n it_o be_v hard_a nay_o impossible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v which_o of_o they_o do_v the_o work_n when_o different_a medicine_n proper_a for_o the_o same_o distemper_n be_v administer_v at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o say_v which_o of_o they_o work_v the_o cure._n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o wonderful_a efficacy_n in_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n but_o we_o can_v never_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o nation_n be_v effect_v by_o that_o when_o hope_n and_o fear_n and_o outward_a force_n and_o necessity_n be_v in_o conjunction_n with_o it_o all_o which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o detract_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o conversion_n it_o make_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n that_o it_o set_v i●_n it_o a_o better_a light_n and_o make_v it_o shine_v the_o bright_a man_n be_v convert_v then_o not_o to_o a_o conquer_a but_o persecute_v church_n the_o secular_a power_n be_v against_o they_o that_o preach_v this_o holy_a doctrine_n much_o may_v be_v lose_v and_o nothing_o in_o this_o world_n get_v by_o it_o there_o be_v no_o reward_n to_o encourage_v man_n to_o receive_v it_o but_o a_o thousand_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n to_o deter_v they_o from_o it_o and_o then_o indeed_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v in_o its_o great_a lustre_n it_o wrought_v all_o alone_a and_o have_v nothing_o to_o put_v in_o with_o it_o for_o a_o share_n in_o the_o conquest_n it_o make_v the_o simplicity_n of_o its_o preacher_n clear_v they_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o fraud_n the_o little_a or_o no_o interest_n they_o have_v in_o the_o government_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o they_o can_v not_o use_v force_n and_o every_o thing_n concur_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o be_v pure_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o which_o they_o prevail_v but_o to_o proceed_v a_o little_a more_o particular_o to_o answer_v what_o the_o cardinal_n have_v discourse_v upon_o this_o subject_a first_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o show_v in_o the_o general_n that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n second_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o such_o particular_n as_o do_v more_o particular_o affect_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o do_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o that_o church_n be_v no_o note_n of_o its_o be_v a_o true_a church_n three_o i_o shall_v show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o those_o argument_n with_o which_o the_o cardinal_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n first_o that_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o a_o true_a church_n will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v 1._o what_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n 2._o the_o nature_n of_o mankind_n 3._o matter_n of_o fact._n 1._o although_o our_o saviour_n sufficient_o understand_v how_o much_o his_o doctrine_n be_v likely_a to_o prevail_v in_o the_o world_n yet_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v this_o to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o his_o church_n that_o he_o give_v as_o plain_a intimation_n of_o the_o prevalency_n of_o error_n and_o do_v often_o bid_v we_o take_v care_n how_o we_o be_v impose_v upon_o on_o thereby_o take_v heed_n say_v he_o that_o no_o man_n deceive_v you_o for_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o my_o name_n 5._o mat._n 24.4_o 5._o say_v i_o be_o christ_n and_o deceive_v many_o for_o there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n 24._o verse_n 24._o and_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n insomuch_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect._n when_o he_o foretell_v so_o general_a a_o defection_n he_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v think_v the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n to_o have_v be_v the_o character_n of_o his_o true_a disciple_n he_o do_v indeed_o compare_v the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n which_o be_v the_o least_o of_o all_o seed_n hut_n when_o it_o be_v grow_v it_o be_v the_o great_a among_o herb_n unto_o leaven_n which_o leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n unto_o a_o net_n which_o gather_v of_o every_o kind_n all_o which_o comparison_n do_v intimate_v how_o much_o his_o church_n will_v spread_v far_o &_o near_o but_o not_o that_o such_o its_o diffusiveness_n be_v to_o be_v rely_v upon_o as_o a_o note_n whereby_o to_o find_v it_o for_o by_o that_o mark_v it_o can_v not_o then_o have_v be_v find_v when_o it_o be_v but_o a_o little_a flock_n beside_o that_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o compare_v likewise_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o a_o man_n which_o sow_v good_a seed_n in_o his_o field_n 26._o verse_n 24_o 25_o 26._o but_o while_o man_n sleep_v his_o enemy_n come_v and_o sow_v tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n and_o go_v his_o way_n but_o when_o the_o blade_n be_v spring_v up_o and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n than_o appear_v the_o tare_n also_o in_o which_o case_n if_o we_o be_v to_o judge_n by_o the_o growth_n and_o spread_a we_o may_v conclude_v the_o tare_n to_o have_v be_v the_o best_a seed_n and_o not_o sow_o by_o a_o enemy_n he_o compare_v likewise_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n to_o the_o servant_n of_o a_o certain_a king_n send_v out_o by_o he_o to_o call_v those_o that_o be_v bid_v to_o the_o wedding_n but_o to_o no_o purpose_n etc._n mat._n 22.2_o etc._n etc._n for_o they_o all_o make_v light_n of_o it_o intimate_v hereby_o how_o possible_a it_o be_v for_o those_o who_o be_v obstinate_a not_o to_o hearken_v to_o the_o most_o efficacious_a doctrine_n that_o can_v be_v preach_v the_o most_o passionate_a and_o earnest_a invitation_n which_o can_v be_v make_v they_o and_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o good_a seed_n some_o of_o which_o fall_v by_o the_o way-side_n some_o upon_o stony_a place_n some_o among_o thorn_n 4._o mat._n 13.3_o 4._o and_o other_o upon_o good_a ground_n he_o do_v plain_o set_v forth_o that_o let_v any_o doctrine_n be_v never_o so_o good_a the_o reception_n which_o it_o find_v in_o the_o world_n will_v be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o those_o disposition_n of_o mind_n which_o it_o happen_v to_o meet_v with_o and_o here_o also_o if_o the_o rule_n have_v be_v that_o that_o be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n which_o grow_v fast_o and_o out-top_n the_o other_o we_o must_v have_v give_v it_o for_o the_o thorn_n which_o grow_v up_o and_o choke_v the_o good_a seed_n which_o lead_v i_o to_o show_v 2._o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o mankind_n how_o weak_a a_o proof_n of_o a_o true_a church_n the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n be_v which_o it_o teach_v for_o man_n mind_n be_v so_o uncertain_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o inconstancy_n of_o their_o circumstance_n which_o chief_o influence_n they_o that_o often_o truth_n be_v shut_v out_o where_o error_n find_v a_o easy_a admission_n humane_a nature_n be_v so_o weak_a a_o thing_n so_o apt_a to_o take_v impression_n first_o from_o this_o thing_n then_o from_o another_o that_o no_o great_a heed_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o its_o change_n no_o certain_a argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o they_o such_o indeed_o be_v the_o power_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v mankind_n free_v from_o their_o prejudices_fw-la against_o it_o be_v their_o mind_n no_o way_n bias_v by_o interest_n or_o passion_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n full_o instruct_v concern_v it_o there_o be_v
no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o it_o will_v general_o obtain_v but_o when_o man_n inclination_n and_o circumstance_n be_v so_o various_a nothing_o be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o the_o receive_n or_o reject_v truth_n be_v a_o thing_n too_o uncertain_a to_o be_v make_v a_o infallible_a note_n of_o it_o when_o it_o be_v argue_v on_o behalf_n of_o christianity_n that_o so_o many_o thousand_o be_v on_o the_o sudden_a convert_v to_o the_o faith_n the_o force_n of_o such_o a_o argument_n do_v not_o lie_v in_o the_o bare_a prevalency_n of_o the_o doctrine_n but_o in_o its_o prevalency_n when_o place_v in_o such_o circumstance_n as_o it_o at_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v and_o when_o man_n of_o mean_a birth_n and_o education_n as_o have_v already_o be_v observe_v do_v without_o force_n or_o fraud_n on_o the_o sudden_a make_v so_o many_o proselyte_n to_o a_o religion_n which_o be_v so_o direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o opinion_n to_o which_o the_o world_n have_v be_v so_o long_o accustom_v a_o religion_n which_o be_v likely_a to_o bring_v such_o great_a inconvenience_n upon_o those_o who_o embrace_v it_o this_o indeed_o be_v very_o remarkable_a and_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o nothing_o but_o the_o power_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v only_o able_a to_o bring_v about_o so_o wonderful_a a_o effect_n in_o a_o word_n man_n be_v often_o guide_v by_o fancy_n prejudice_n and_o interest_n than_o by_o reason_n make_v they_o more_o capable_a of_o error_n than_o of_o truth_n and_o when_o they_o have_v once_o receive_v it_o not_o only_o unwilling_a to_o part_v with_o it_o but_o zealous_a to_o propagate_v it_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v the_o agreeableness_n of_o any_o doctrine_n to_o their_o wicked_a lust_n and_o affection_n be_v most_o likely_a to_o win_v upon_o they_o the_o craft_n and_o cunning_n of_o those_o who_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v may_v 〈◊〉_d easy_o mislead_v unstable_a mind_n into_o gross_a mistake_v before_o they_o be_v aware_a 〈…〉_o force_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o present_a preferment_n or_o the_o hope_n of_o it_o may_v make_v they_o profess_v what_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a and_o then_o seek_v for_o reason_n to_o defend_v it_o since_o than_o there_o be_v so_o many_o thing_n beside_o truth_n which_o may_v induce_v man_n to_o admit_v any_o doctrine_n the_o bare_a admit_v of_o it_o though_o never_o so_o universal_o can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o or_o of_o the_o church_n that_o teach_v it_o god_n have_v endue_v we_o with_o a_o capacity_n of_o find_v out_o truth_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o have_v make_v we_o fallible_a creature_n and_o liable_a to_o be_v impose_v upon_o so_o that_o it_o stand_v we_o in_o hand_n to_o be_v aware_a how_o we_o be_v deceive_v and_o the_o more_o care_n we_o take_v in_o a_o concern_n of_o this_o nature_n the_o more_o we_o discover_v our_o own_o sincerity_n and_o zeal_n for_o truth_n but_o let_v there_o be_v never_o such_o clear_a discovery_n thereof_o it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n wilful_o to_o shut_v our_o eye_n against_o they_o nay_o when_o we_o have_v adhere_v to_o truth_n for_o some_o time_n we_o may_v be_v tempt_v either_o whole_o to_o forsake_v it_o or_o to_o intermingle_v gross_a error_n with_o it_o so_o that_o it_o be_v as_o improper_a to_o conclude_v the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o or_o of_o the_o church_n that_o profess_v it_o as_o that_o any_o cause_n be_v just_a because_o successful_a such_o be_v god_n infinite_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n that_o as_o he_o do_v oftentimes_o bless_v with_o unexpected_a success_n a_o honest_a and_o just_a design_n and_o they_o who_o be_v sagacious_a in_o trace_v the_o footstep_n of_o providence_n do_v easy_o discover_v it_o so_o do_v he_o likewise_o frequent_o exert_v his_o power_n after_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o truth_n but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n as_o he_o often_o permit_v a_o unjust_a design_n to_o prevail_v and_o prosper_v so_o likewise_o do_v he_o suffer_v error_n to_o multiply_v and_o increase_v and_o when_o he_o do_v at_o any_o time_n exert_v his_o power_n after_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o truth_n he_o still_o deal_v with_o man_n as_o with_o rational_a creature_n so_o that_o such_o his_o power_n may_v be_v resist_v nay_o may_v be_v so_o far_o resist_v as_o may_v make_v he_o punish_v with_o infatuation_n such_o their_o resistance_n as_o he_o serve_v the_o pharisee_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o obstinacy_n who_o eye_n he_o blind_v and_o who_o heart_n he_o harden_a 41._o john_n 12.40_o 41._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n nor_o understand_v with_o their_o heart_n and_o be_v convert_v and_o as_o happen_v to_o those_o who_o the_o apostle_n make_v mention_n of_o who_o because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v 11._o 2_o thess_n 2.10_o 11._o god_n send_v strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v a_o lie._n since_o therefore_o such_o be_v the_o temper_n and_o constitution_n of_o mankind_n as_o to_o be_v daily_o subject_a to_o error_n and_o to_o be_v liable_a by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n to_o be_v at_o last_o harden_v in_o they_o nothing_o can_v with_o any_o certainty_n be_v determine_v concern_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o church_n from_o the_o prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n profess_v in_o it_o 3._o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o this_o note_n for_o the_o history_n of_o all_o age_n make_v it_o evident_a what_o a_o influence_n error_n have_v often_o have_v upon_o man_n mind_n and_o that_o although_o truth_n may_v have_v happen_v sometime_o to_o have_v prevail_v yet_o that_o it_o have_v be_v as_o often_o refuse_v and_o gross_a and_o most_o impious_a opinion_n prefer_v before_o it_o how_o soon_o be_v our_o first_o parent_n when_o their_o mind_n be_v in_o their_o great_a strength_n and_o vigour_n and_o not_o as_o yet_o bias_v by_o any_o misapprehension_n of_o thing_n 6._o gen._n 3.5_o 6._o by_o the_o cunning_a artifices_fw-la of_o satan_n tempt_v to_o believe_v a_o lie_n after_o which_o first_o and_z grand_a mistake_n how_o do_v their_o whole_a stock_n degenerate_a when_o every_o imagination_n of_o man_n heart_n be_v evil_a 6._o gen._n 6.5_o 6._o it_o repent_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o have_v make_v man_n on_o the_o earth_n afterward_o god_n choose_v to_o himself_o out_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n a_o peculiar_a people_n and_o to_o secure_v they_o against_o the_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n of_o those_o who_o dwell_v near_o they_o he_o give_v they_o particular_a statute_n which_o by_o threat_n and_o promise_n and_o mighty_a wonder_n which_o he_o wrought_v for_o they_o he_o oblige_v they_o to_o observe_v yet_o how_o soon_o do_v they_o forget_v god_n and_o turn_v after_o idol_n so_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ahab_n according_a to_o god_n own_o account_n there_o be_v but_o 7000_o who_o have_v not_o bow_v unto_o baal_n if_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n have_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o do_v not_o see_v why_o the_o priest_n of_o baal_n have_v not_o as_o much_o reason_n at_o that_o time_n to_o have_v insist_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o romish_a priest_n can_v have_v now_o at_o our_o saviour_n come_v the_o pharisee_n have_v infect_v the_o whole_a nation_n with_o their_o tradition_n and_o so_o obstinate_o do_v they_o adhere_v to_o they_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o many_o miracle_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v wrought_v for_o they_o notwithstanding_o the_o holiness_n of_o his_o life_n and_o conversation_n few_o believe_v on_o he_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o isaiah_n make_v mention_v joh._n 12.38_o lord_n who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n of_o which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o complain_v john_n 5.43_o i_o be_o come_v in_o my_o father_n name_n and_o you_o receive_v i_o not_o if_o another_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n he_o you_o will_v receive_v and_o in_o the_o 11_o of_o st._n matthew_n ver_fw-la 20_o etc._n etc._n he_o do_v most_o severe_o upbraid_v the_o city_n wherein_o most_o of_o his_o mighty_a work_n be_v do_v because_o they_o repent_v not_o and_o do_v open_o declare_v that_o it_o will_v be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o for_o they_o if_o any_o doctrine_n be_v likely_a to_o have_v be_v efficacious_a one_o will_v have_v think_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o teach_v by_o himself_o have_v be_v so_o and_o yet_o we_o find_v that_o no_o prophet_n be_v ever_o less_o respect_v than_o he_o be_v even_o among_o his_o own_o countryman_n the_o same_o thing_n happen_v likewise_o to_o st._n
be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o visible_a prevalency_n of_o any_o doctrine_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o it_o will_v make_v nothing_o to_o the_o cardinal_n purpose_n for_o that_o which_o in_o these_o ss_z be_v say_v to_o prevail_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n i._n e._n the_o true_a doctrine_n but_o we_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v such_o and_o therefore_o these_o place_n be_v not_o applicable_a thereunto_o 4._o be_v these_o ss_z applicable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o have_v that_o true_a doctrine_n which_o be_v oftentimes_o so_o efficacious_a yet_o the_o efficacy_n here_o express_v can_v be_v no_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n since_o although_o as_o have_v already_o be_v show_v the_o true_a doctrine_n do_v sometime_o prevail_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o it_o always_o shall_v for_o it_o may_v be_v pervert_v it_o may_v be_v resist_v and_o error_n may_v meet_v with_o a_o much_o kind_a reception_n in_o the_o world_n than_o it_o do_v as_o for_o what_o bellarmine_n say_v in_o the_o second_o place_n concern_v the_o prevalency_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n we_o allow_v it_o all_o to_o be_v true_a but_o we_o do_v not_o think_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v more_o concern_v in_o it_o than_o any_o other_o christian_a church_n whatsoever_o what_o then_o happen_v do_v very_o much_o confirm_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o the_o general_n but_o do_v not_o at_o all_o prove_v any_o particular_a party_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v better_a than_o another_o much_o less_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o doctrine_n although_o it_o be_v once_o the_o same_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o what_o it_o be_v in_o the_o cardinal_n day_n and_o what_o it_o be_v now_o be_v quite_o another_o thing_n from_o what_o it_o be_v then_o the_o primitive_a christian_n convert_v the_o heathen_n from_o their_o idolatry_n to_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n but_o the_o great_a design_n of_o the_o catholic_n missionary_n be_v to_o render_v their_o proselyte_n entire_o submissive_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o thing_n i_o may_v here_o conclude_v do_v not_o the_o cardinal_n much_o insist_v upon_o the_o particular_a conversion_n wrought_v by_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n upon_o some_o of_o which_o in_o the_o three_o place_n i_o shall_v make_v some_o brief_a reflection_n now_o as_o to_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o english_a by_o augustin_n the_o monk_n it_o may_v be_v reply_v 1._o that_o the_o centurist_n out_o of_o who_o he_o quote_v this_o and_o the_o other_o instance_n do_v express_o say_v that_o augustin_n eas_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la magis_fw-la deformavit_fw-la quam_fw-la recte_fw-la instituit_fw-la 37._o cent._n 6._o c._n 2._o p._n 37._o 2._o that_o this_o be_v not_o such_o a_o general_a conversion_n as_o seem_v to_o be_v pretend_v for_o as_o have_v be_v late_o clear_v by_o a_o very_a learned_a man_n the_o faith_n be_v here_o plant_v during_o the_o apostle_n time_n 1._o dr._n still_o origin_n britan._n c._n 1._o and_o in_o all_o probability_n by_o st._n paul_n rather_o than_o by_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o one_o else_o beside_o bede_n give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o germanus_n 21._o bed._n l._n 1._o c._n 17_o &_o 21._o lupus_n and_o severus_n come_v over_o hither_o to_o reclaim_v the_o britain_n from_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n several_a year_n before_o the_o arrival_n of_o augustin_n 357._o lib._n 2._o c._n 2._o origin_n britan._n c._n 5._o p._n 357._o and_o that_o at_o his_o come_n over_o several_a british_a bishop_n meet_v he_o at_o augustinsac_n and_o stout_o refuse_v all_o submission_n either_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o he_o last_o although_o he_o may_v be_v very_o instrumental_a towards_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o saxon_n in_o kent_n yet_o be_v he_o even_o in_o that_o affair_n mighty_o assist_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o christian_a queen_n name_v bertha_n 25._o bed._n l._n 1._o c._n 25._o and_o a_o christian_a bishop_n name_v luidhardus_fw-la 3_o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o augustin_n teach_v etc._n vindicat._n of_o the_o answer_n of_o some_o late_a paper_n p._n 72_o etc._n etc._n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a be_v vast_o different_a from_o what_o have_v be_v since_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 4._o that_o augustin_n proud_a carriage_n towards_o the_o british_a bishop_n and_o the_o death_n of_o 1200_o monk_n of_o bangor_n occasion_v by_o their_o denial_n of_o subjection_n unto_o he_o 2._o bed._n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o do_v sufficient_o show_v of_o what_o temper_n he_o be_v 13._o galfridus_n monumet_n hist_o brit._n l._n 11._o c._n 12._o &_o 13._o and_o that_o he_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o make_v use_n of_o other_o mean_n beside_o the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o doctrine_n to_o promote_v what_o he_o be_v send_v hither_o by_o the_o pope_n about_o the_o next_o mission_n which_v the_o cardinal_n make_v mention_n of_o be_v that_o of_o kilianus_n by_o pope_n conon_n who_o convert_v the_o people_n of_o franconia_n who_o chief_a city_n be_v herbipolis_n or_o wirtzburg_n now_o the_o account_n that_o the_o centuriator_n give_v of_o this_o kilianus_n and_o which_o make_v he_o not_o to_o have_v have_v that_o success_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o people_n as_o be_v pretend_v be_v this_o viz._n that_o be_v a_o monk_n and_o by_o nation_n a_o scotish-man_n 516._o centur._n magdeb_n cent._n 7._o p._n 516._o and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o good_a among_o his_o own_o countryman_n with_o his_o preach_v up_o of_o new_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n he_o pass_v over_o into_o germany_n to_o see_v what_o he_o can_v do_v there_o and_o find_v that_o at_o wirtzburg_n the_o governor_n gosbertus_fw-la give_v he_o but_o little_a encouragement_n he_o be_v one_o who_o as_o those_o historian_n relate_v do_v abhor_v those_o popish_a ceremony_n which_o kilianus_n teach_v he_o go_v to_o rome_n and_o get_v the_o pope_n to_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n hope_v that_o at_o his_o return_n thither_o with_o great_a authority_n he_o shall_v be_v better_o receive_v but_o be_v soon_o slay_v by_o his_o own_o auditor_n the_o three_o instance_n be_v the_o conversion_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o germany_n by_o vinofrid_n otherwise_o call_v boniface_n who_o seem_v a_o little_a to_o mistrust_v the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o doctrine_n when_o he_o thus_o write_v 3._o bonif._n ep._n 3._o that_o without_o the_o command_n and_o awe_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o franc_n he_o can_v not_o be_v able_a to_o hinder_v the_o pagan_a rite_n and_o idol-sacrilege_n in_o germany_n and_o as_o the_o centuriator_n tell_v we_o enter_v the_o country_n of_o the_o thuringi_n with_o a_o army_n 22._o cent._n 8._o p._n 21_o 22._o force_v they_o to_o take_v refuge_n in_o a_o fortify_v place_n and_o when_o upon_o no_o other_o term_n they_o be_v willing_a to_o turn_v christian_n but_o upon_o their_o be_v free_v from_o pay_v ten_o for_o the_o future_a to_o the_o king_n of_o hungary_n gratify_v they_o therein_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o vandal_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o the_o monk_n of_o corbie_n hear_v the_o account_n that_o albertus_n krantzius_n give_v the_o vandal_n say_v he_o be_v a_o nation_n singular_o give_v to_o the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o their_o idol_n 1._o lib._n 1._o c._n 1._o till_o by_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n by_o sea_n by_o those_o of_o the_o pomeranian_a on_o the_o east_n and_o those_o of_o other_o christian_a prince_n on_o the_o south_n they_o be_v force_v to_o become_v christian_n as_o to_o the_o conversion_n or_o the_o dane_n 158._o saxo_n gram._n hist_o dan._n l._n 9_o p._n 158._o we_o be_v tell_v that_o harald_n be_v beat_v by_o regner_n and_o have_v no_o other_o hope_n 19_o alb._n krantzii_n metrop_n l._n 1._o c._n 19_o flee_v for_o help_n to_o ludovicus_n the_o emperor_n then_o at_o mentz_n who_o refuse_v to_o assist_v he_o upon_o any_o other_o condition_n than_o that_o of_o his_o turn_a christian_n which_o he_o and_o his_o people_n according_o do_v and_o as_o for_o the_o bulgarian_n sclavonian_n etc._n etc._n beside_o that_o they_o be_v convert_v by_o their_o neighbour_n greek_o as_o well_o as_o italian_n especial_o the_o bulgarian_n who_o disturbance_n from_o some_o western_a missionary_n photius_n passionate_o lament_v it_o be_v not_o a_o sign_n that_o they_o be_v make_v so_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 2._o ep._n 2._o as_o be_v pretend_v since_o as_o the_o centuriator_n tell_v we_o when_o pope_n nicholas_n will_v have_v oblige_v the_o sclavonian_n and_o polonian_n 18._o cent._n 9_o c._n 2._o col_fw-fr 18._o who_o cyrillus_n and_o methodius_n who_o convert_v they_o have_v teach_v to_o have_v their_o public_a service_n
it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n must_v know_v they_o too_o by_o revelation_n from_o he_o than_o it_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o church_n must_v know_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o happen_v hereafter_o because_o it_o be_v god_n only_o that_o can_v communicate_v such_o knowledge_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o those_o who_o have_v any_o degree_n of_o it_o must_v necessary_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n because_o god_n only_o can_v give_v it_o neither_o be_v this_o true_a as_o i_o shall_v present_o show_v nor_o if_o it_o be_v can_v the_o gift_n of_o foretell_v some_o thing_n be_v for_o this_o reason_n a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n unless_o also_o the_o want_n of_o this_o gift_n shall_v be_v a_o demonstration_n against_o any_o communion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a can_v never_o be_v prove_v from_o hence_o that_o none_o but_o god_n can_v bestow_v it_o 3._o he_o add_v that_o in_o deut._n 18_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o for_o a_o note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n if_o a_o prophet_n foretell_v any_o thing_n and_o it_o do_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v now_o first_o this_o argument_n be_v very_o impertinent_a unless_o as_o lie_a prophecy_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n so_o false_a doctrine_n be_v also_o suppose_v a_o note_n of_o a_o false_a church_n which_o be_v a_o very_a dangerous_a supposition_n to_o a_o church_n that_o have_v rather_o be_v try_v by_o any_o other_o note_n than_o that_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o her_o doctrine_n for_o it_o seem_v if_o we_o can_v clear_o prove_v by_o any_o good_a argument_n that_o she_o profess_v false_a doctrine_n it_o follow_v without_o more_o to_o do_v that_o she_o be_v no_o true_a church_n but_o second_o it_o be_v not_o say_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o cardinal_n that_o false_a prophecy_n be_v a_o note_n of_o false_a doctrine_n but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o note_n or_o rather_o a_o argument_n that_o the_o prophet_n have_v no_o commission_n from_o god_n to_o say_v that_o such_o a_o event_n shall_v come_v to_o pass_v nor_o do_v it_o follow_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o false_a prophet_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o catholic_n or_o a_o orthodox_n professor_n to_o tell_v a_o lie_n which_o i_o think_v no_o man_n will_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o say_v three_o much_o less_o be_v it_o say_v that_o a_o prophet_n foretell_v right_o a_o future_a contingent_a event_n be_v a_o note_n of_o true_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v necessary_a to_o make_v true_a prophecy_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n nay_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n there_o be_v express_a caution_n give_v not_o long_o before_o against_o be_v seduce_v into_o idolatry_n by_o true_a prediction_n if_o there_o arise_v among_o you_o a_o prophet_n or_o a_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n and_o give_v thou_o a_o sign_n or_o a_o wonder_n and_o the_o sign_n or_o the_o wonder_n come_v to_o pass_v whereof_o he_o speak_v unto_o he_o say_v 3._o deut._n xiii_o 1_o 2_o 3._o let_v we_o go_v after_o other_o god_n thou_o shall_v not_o hearken_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o that_o prophet_n for_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n prove_v you_o etc._n etc._n which_o show_v the_o confidence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n in_o pronounce_v so_o peremptory_o that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o true_a prediction_n among_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n unless_o perhaps_o for_o a_o testimony_n to_o our_o faith._n for_o this_o warn_v plain_o suppose_v that_o such_o prediction_n there_o will_v be_v not_o to_o confirm_v believer_n in_o the_o truth_n but_o to_o prove_v their_o constancy_n under_o a_o temptation_n to_o error_n they_o must_v indeed_o be_v false_a prophet_n as_o that_o signify_v false_a teacher_n who_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o gain_v authority_n to_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o to_o idolatrous_a practice_n by_o appeal_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o own_o prediction_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v to_o be_v true_a prophet_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o event_n which_o they_o will_v foretell_v and_o therefore_o to_o pretend_v that_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n never_o foretell_v any_o contingency_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o when_o providence_n design_v a_o far_a testimony_n to_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n be_v to_o speak_v gentle_o a_o wretched_a mistake_n and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o difficulty_n in_o this_o point_n than_o whether_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v god_n or_o bellarmin_n but_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o true_a prophecy_n among_o heathen_n beside_o those_o which_o be_v design_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n yet_o even_o these_o be_v a_o manifest_a argument_n that_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n nay_o they_o prove_v it_o more_o evident_o than_o any_o other_o prophecy_n can_v do_v because_o those_o prediction_n sure_o have_v the_o most_o unquestionable_a truth_n which_o be_v make_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o true_a doctrine_n of_o which_o kind_n that_o there_o have_v be_v several_a among_o the_o gentile_n seem_v very_o probable_a from_o those_o remain_v thereof_o which_o we_o meet_v with_o in_o virgil_n and_o tacitus_n ●_o eclog._n 4._o de_fw-fr divin_n ●_o not_o to_o insist_v upon_o that_o famous_a acrostic_n of_o sibylla_n erythraea_n in_o lactantius_n and_o eusebius_n which_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o cicero_n have_v see_v 47._o apol._n 2._o strom._n l._n 6._o ep._n 49._o qu._n 2._o de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 18._o c._n 47._o nor_o what_o justin_n martyr_n and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n say_v of_o the_o book_n of_o hystaspes_n i_o shall_v only_o note_v what_o st._n austin_n say_v of_o this_o master_n viz._n that_o christ_n be_v not_o foretell_v in_o israel_n only_o but_o in_o other_o nation_n also_o and_o that_o prediction_n concern_v christ_n may_v be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o book_n of_o those_o who_o be_v stranger_n to_o israel_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o incongruous_a to_o believe_v that_o this_o mystery_n be_v reveal_v to_o man_n of_o other_o nation_n which_o thing_n say_v he_o may_v be_v mention_v as_o advantage_n on_o our_o side_n over_o and_o above_o what_o be_v necessary_a now_o will_v any_o man_n say_v that_o these_o prediction_n do_v less_o show_v a_o prophetic_a light_n among_o the_o gentile_n because_o they_o be_v true_a with_o what_o conscience_n therefore_o can_v bellarmin_n shuffle_v off_o those_o famous_a prediction_n of_o balaam_n a_o heathen_a soothsayer_n etc._n numb_a xxiv_o 15_o etc._n etc._n concern_v christ_n to_o which_o he_o add_v those_o of_o the_o sibyl_n by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v a_o testimony_n to_o our_o faith_n as_o if_o the_o argument_n be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o strong_a that_o the_o gift_n of_o true_a prophecy_n be_v not_o confine_v within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n sure_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o old_a testament_n itself_o be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o prophecy_n 19_o 2_o pet._n i_o 19_o and_o that_o the_o main_a prediction_n thereof_o be_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o faith._n but_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o he_o strike_v off_o the_o true_a prediction_n of_o heathen_n from_o be_v a_o instance_n of_o prophetic_a light_n because_o forsooth_o they_o be_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n he_o must_v also_o set_v aside_o the_o best_a evidence_n of_o prophetic_a light_n within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o prediction_n whereof_o be_v no_o less_o but_o more_o than_o any_o other_o for_o a_o testimony_n to_o our_o faith._n as_o to_o the_o oracle_n of_o apollo_n which_o he_o do_v well_o to_o reject_v from_o be_v true_a prophecy_n we_o need_v not_o to_o offer_v they_o for_o the_o disparagement_n of_o this_o note_n of_o prophetic_a light_n since_o they_o may_v be_v deceitful_a and_o yet_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n neither_o be_v always_o in_o the_o church_n nor_o never_o among_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o it_o but_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o heretic_n be_v deceive_v as_o often_o as_o they_o will_v foretell_v any_o thing_n and_o that_o this_o appear_v from_o the_o false_a prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a thing_n that_o such_o a_o man_n shall_v think_v it_o enough_o to_o prove_v a_o conclusion_n so_o general_a by_o a_o particular_a instance_n he_o refer_v we_o to_o 1_o king_n 22._o where_o we_o find_v that_o ahab_n prophet_n speak_v by_o a_o lie_a spirit_n but_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o heretic_n never_o prophesy_v true_o there_o be_v some_o false_a prophet_n among_o the_o ten_o tribe_n upon_o their_o revolt_n therefore_o there_o never_o be_v any_o true_a one_o how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o of_o the_o lord_n prophet_n among_o they_o 4._o 1_o king._n xviii_o 4._o that_o at_o one_o time_n
the_o receive_n of_o apocryphal_a book_n into_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o other_o opinion_n and_o practice_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n as_o it_o be_v against_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n and_o destroy_v the_o certainty_n of_o every_o thing_n else_o so_o the_o jew_n upon_o all_o occasion_n object_n against_o it_o we_o have_v a_o witness_n beyond_o exception_n even_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o bring_v in_o the_o jew_n object_v against_o this_o doctrine_n 1525._o fortalitium_fw-la fidei_fw-la lugd._n anno_fw-la 1525._o and_o represent_v the_o unreasonableness_n and_o absurdity_n of_o it_o from_o fourteen_o several_a head_n of_o argument_n which_o i_o may_v not_o here_o represent_v to_o the_o reader_n because_o it_o will_v be_v too_o great_a a_o digression_n nor_o do_v i_o find_v this_o learned_a author_n who_o write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o attempt_n to_o answer_v these_o objection_n allege_v that_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o hebrew_n doctor_n the_o jew_n have_v so_o far_o abhor_v this_o doctrine_n etc._n decret_n gregor_n l._n v._o tit._n vi_o cap._n 13._o accepimus_fw-la autem_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o so_o far_o detest_a christian_n upon_o this_o account_n that_o they_o be_v wont_a when_o they_o make_v use_v of_o christian_a nurse_n to_o force_v they_o to_o throw_v away_o their_o milk_n for_o three_o day_n together_o before_o they_o give_v suck_v when_o it_o happen_v that_o at_o easter_n these_o nurse_n have_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o pope_n gregory_n complain_v of_o and_o decree_n upon_o it_o that_o christian_n shall_v not_o for_o the_o future_a be_v servant_n to_o the_o jew_n ikkarim_n j._n albo_n ikkarim_n and_o josephus_n albo_n dispute_v against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n very_o vigorous_o and_o so_o do_v many_o other_o 255._o v._o nizach_n vet_z p._n 255._o in_o their_o book_n against_o christian_n and_o many_o more_o testimony_n may_v be_v produce_v 11._o lipman_n nizachon_n p._n 11._o be_v not_o most_o of_o their_o book_n print_v in_o italy_n where_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a for_o they_o to_o be_v too_o plain_a and_o learned_a man_n do_v very_o well_o know_v that_o the_o passage_n in_o joseph_n albo_n against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v be_v expunge_v in_o one_o edition_n of_o that_o author_n it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v that_o all_o the_o late_a jew_n be_v against_o this_o doctrine_n and_o that_o trypho_n the_o jew_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n have_v not_o object_v it_o against_o christian_n be_v only_o a_o argument_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o so_o old_a as_o that_o time_n in_o which_o they_o live_v this_o doctrine_n the_o jew_n be_v certain_a can_v be_v true_a because_o if_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o the_o falsity_n of_o this_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n nor_o can_v ever_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o we_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o be_v one_o great_a occasion_n of_o harden_v they_o against_o christianity_n and_o we_o be_v never_o like_a to_o see_v they_o come_v into_o the_o christian_a church_n till_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v remove_v out_o of_o it_o but_o then_o the_o practice_n annex_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o worship_v a_o creature_n be_v so_o dangerous_a that_o even_o they_o who_o own_o the_o doctrine_n confess_v if_o that_o be_v not_o true_a they_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o idolatry_n god_n give_v we_o a_o just_a sense_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o we_o may_v not_o hereafter_o have_v beside_o our_o own_o sin_n which_o will_v be_v load_n great_a enough_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o great_a measure_n to_o answer_v for_o the_o end_n london_n print_v by_o j._n d._n for_o richard_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n 1687._o the_o fourteen_o note_n of_o the_o church_n examine_v viz_o the_o unhappy_a end_n of_o the_o church_n enemy_n decima_fw-la quarta_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la infelix_fw-la exitus_fw-la seu_fw-la finis_fw-la eorm_n qui_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la oppugnant_fw-la bellarm._n l._n four_o c._n 17._o de_fw-fr notis_n ecclesiae_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la july_n 27._o 1687._o guil._n needham_n if_o he_o be_v a_o unwise_a builder_n who_o pull_v down_o what_o he_o intend_v to_o build_v up_o then_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n though_o one_o of_o the_o master-builder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n deserve_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v one_o of_o the_o wise_a for_o he_o must_v shut_v his_o eye_n close_o who_o do_v not_o plain_o see_v that_o he_o frequent_o defeat_v his_o own_o design_n by_o give_v note_n which_o conclude_v that_o church_n to_o be_v false_a which_o he_o design_v to_o prove_v be_v the_o only_a true_a one_o such_o for_o instance_n be_v that_o which_o be_v now_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o shall_v in_o the_o sequel_n of_o this_o discourse_n be_v make_v appear_v the_o confutation_n of_o which_o can_v be_v difficult_a since_o i_o find_v nothing_o in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n that_o have_v so_o much_o as_o the_o show_n of_o a_o argument_n whereas_o some_o of_o his_o note_n be_v guard_v with_o a_o pretence_n at_o least_o of_o scripture_n reason_n and_o antiquity_n this_o be_v expose_v naked_a to_o the_o assault_n of_o its_o adversary_n without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o paper_n shield_n to_o protect_v it_o he_o tell_v we_o indeed_o many_o tragical_a story_n of_o unhappy_a death_n some_o of_o which_o be_v true_a some_o doubtful_a and_o other_o false_a some_o of_o person_n who_o be_v deadly_a enemy_n other_o of_o person_n who_o be_v zealous_a defender_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o have_v the_o story_n be_v all_o certain_o true_a and_o have_v the_o person_n who_o thus_o die_v be_v all_o of_o they_o implacable_a enemy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v unless_o he_o have_v also_o prove_v that_o when_o a_o person_n die_v a_o unnatural_a death_n the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v that_o that_o church_n of_o which_o he_o profess_v himself_o a_o member_n be_v false_a and_o the_o church_n he_o oppose_v the_o only_a true_a one_o but_o how_o unwise_a soever_o he_o be_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o his_o note_n he_o be_v so_o wise_a as_o not_o to_o attempt_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o unless_o the_o citation_n of_o this_o scripture_n may_v pass_v for_o a_o proof_n praise_v his_o people_n o_o you_o nation_n for_o he_o will_v avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o will_v render_v vengeance_n to_o his_o enemy_n 32.43_o enemy_n deut._n 32.43_o god_n will_v avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o servant_n therefore_o if_o a_o protestant_n die_v a_o uphappy_a death_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n but_o why_o do_v the_o cardinal_n send_v out_o this_o note_n so_o forlorn_a for_o a_o good_a reason_n because_o no_o defence_n can_v be_v find_v for_o it_o but_o why_o do_v he_o then_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o field_n because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v popular_a and_o may_v serve_v the_o cause_n better_o than_o another_o that_o be_v never_o so_o well_o fence_v for_o will_v not_o he_o dread_v to_o oppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n will_v set_v a_o note_n of_o vengeance_n upon_o those_o that_o do_v so_o will_v not_o he_o steadfast_o adhere_v to_o it_o who_o believe_v that_o that_o be_v a_o certain_a way_n to_o a_o happy_a death_n in_o short_a whosoever_o can_v be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o this_o note_n distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o church_n he_o will_v as_o much_o dread_a to_o turn_v protestant_n as_o he_o do_v to_o die_v the_o most_o prodigious_a sort_n of_o death_n but_o the_o mischief_n be_v that_o however_o serviceable_a this_o pretend_a note_n may_v be_v to_o they_o among_o weak_a and_o undiscerning_a person_n it_o will_v do_v there_o as_o much_o disservice_n among_o those_o who_o be_v judicious_a and_o able_a to_o examine_v it_o for_o when_o they_o shall_v once_o see_v what_o a_o palpable_a cheat_n it_o be_v and_o in_o case_n that_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o least_o reason_n of_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n to_o pretend_v to_o it_o they_o will_v be_v thereby_o dispose_v to_o break_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n which_o contradict_v its_o own_o mark_n and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o some_o other_o church_n which_o have_v a_o better_a title_n to_o they_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v proceed_v in_o this_o method_n i._o i_o shall_v premise_v some_o thing_n as_o preparatory_a to_o what_o follow_v ii_o show_n that_o this_o can_v
apostolicum_fw-la solium_fw-la annos_fw-la decem_fw-la menses_fw-la septem_fw-la tenuisset_fw-la praecipiti_fw-la morbo_fw-la ex_fw-la humanis_fw-la ereptus_fw-la est_fw-la raynald_n ad_fw-la a_o 1352._o n._n 21._o as_o their_o own_o writer_n witness_v but_o luther_n have_v eat_v a_o lusty_a supper_n and_o be_v merry_a and_o jocular_a the_o evening_n before_o and_o so_o have_v several_a of_o their_o pope_n the_o next_o evening_n before_o they_o die_v pope_n paul_n two_o after_o he_o have_v sup_v most_o jolly_o and_o persuade_v himself_o that_o he_o have_v many_o year_n to_o live_v the_o same_o night_n die_v of_o a_o apoplexy_n 262._o apoplexy_n et_fw-la cum_fw-la annos_fw-la plurimos_fw-la vivere_fw-la sibi_fw-la persuaderet_fw-la anno_fw-la salutis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la 1471._o v._n kal._n augusti_n hora_fw-la secunda_fw-la noctis_fw-la cum_fw-la eo_fw-la die_fw-la laetum_fw-la consistorium_fw-la habuisset_fw-la &_o jocundissime_fw-la caenasset_fw-la apoplexia_fw-la correptus_fw-la vitam_fw-la cum_fw-la morte_fw-la mutavit_fw-la johan_n stell_n anno_fw-la 1464._o p._n 262._o pope_n leo_n x_o lead_v constant_o a_o merry_a life_n but_o his_o death_n happen_v in_o the_o high_a excess_n of_o feast_v mirth_n and_o jollity_n and_o so_o sudden_o that_o there_o be_v not_o time_n afford_v for_o absolution_n and_o extreme_a unction_n 109._o unction_n exit_fw-la huius_fw-la victoriae_fw-la nuncio_n leonem_fw-la pontificem_fw-la ingenti_fw-la diffusum_fw-la gaudio_fw-la referunt_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la apoplexia_fw-la correptus_fw-la nullis_fw-la perceptis_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la aetatis_fw-la anno_fw-la quadragesimo_fw-la sexto_fw-la nondum_fw-la exacto_fw-la decessit_fw-la inopina_fw-la morte_fw-la raynald_n ad_fw-la a_o 1521._o n._n 108._o die_fw-la insequenti_fw-la laetitiae_fw-la pompam_fw-la sva_fw-la morte_fw-la clausit_fw-la inopina_fw-la quidem_fw-la ade●_n ut_fw-la ne_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la quidem_fw-la munitus_fw-la suerit_fw-la n._n 109._o and_o if_o luther_n jest_v the_o day_n before_o he_o die_v methinks_v it_o may_v have_v pass_v without_o any_o severe_a censure_n since_o sir_n tho._n more_n the_o pope_n martyr_n be_v so_o sportful_a upon_o the_o scaffold_n and_o die_v with_o a_o jest_n in_o his_o mouth_n but_o what_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o his_o enemy_n we_o may_v learn_v from_o those_o monstrous_a tale_n they_o spread_v concern_v his_o death_n not_o only_o after_o but_o long_o before_o it_o such_o as_o that_o horrible_a miracle_n wrought_v at_o his_o funeral_n for_o the_o conviction_n of_o heretic_n which_o he_o confute_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o it_o be_v not_o unpleasant_a to_o read_v how_o they_o contradict_v one_o another_o one_o say_v that_o he_o purge_v out_o his_o entrail_n like_o arius_n another_o that_o his_o mouth_n be_v distort_v and_o his_o whole_a right_a side_n turn_v to_o a_o duskish_a colour_n but_o above_o all_o commend_v i_o to_o thyraeus_n the_o jesuit_n he_o confident_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o a_o town_n of_o brabant_n name_v cheol_n there_o be_v many_o person_n possess_v with_o devil_n who_o be_v bring_v thither_o to_o be_v cure_v by_o the_o intercession_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o place_n that_o these_o poor_a creature_n be_v on_o a_o sudden_a deliver_v from_o these_o evil_a spirit_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o very_a day_n that_o luther_n die_v that_o the_o day_n after_o the_o devil_n return_v again_o into_o the_o same_o body_n and_o be_v ask_v whither_o they_o be_v go_v the_o day_n before_o answer_v that_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o their_o prince_n they_o be_v call_v forth_o to_o attend_v the_o soul_n of_o their_o grand_a prophet_n and_o companion_n luther_n this_o fable_n as_o ridiculous_a as_o it_o be_v malicious_a be_v quote_v at_o large_a and_o credit_v by_o as_o considerable_a a_o man_n as_o florimond_n de_fw-fr ramond_n 332._o ramond_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr naissance_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr heresy_n l._n 3._o c._n 11._o p._n 332._o he_o i_o say_v that_o shall_v reflect_v upon_o these_o thing_n will_v not_o be_v apt_a to_o believe_v the_o report_n of_o his_o adversary_n if_o we_o take_v the_o account_n of_o his_o death_n from_o sleidan_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o very_o different_a and_o such_o as_o be_v every_o way_n become_v a_o most_o pious_a and_o devout_a christian_a 17._o christian_a jo._n sleid._n comment_fw-fr l._n 17._o but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v his_o friend_n and_o therefore_o as_o little_a to_o be_v credit_v as_o his_o enemy_n hear_v therefore_o what_o many_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v who_o can_v be_v suspect_v of_o any_o partiality_n in_o favour_n of_o he_o the_o father_n in_o trent_n say_v father_n paul_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n conceive_v great_a hope_n see_v that_o so_o potent_a a_o instrument_n to_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o the_o rather_o because_o that_o death_n be_v divulge_v throughout_o italy_n with_o many_o prodigious_a and_o fabulous_a circumstance_n which_o be_v ascribe_v to_o miracle_n and_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n though_o there_o be_v but_o the_o usual_a accident_n which_o do_v ordinary_o happen_v in_o the_o death_n of_o man_n of_o sixty_o three_o year_n of_o age_n 149._o age_n hist_o of_o the_o counc_fw-la of_o trent_n l._n 2._o p._n 149._o so_o that_o in_o father_n paul_n judgement_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o his_o death_n but_o what_o be_v common_a yea_o that_o the_o very_o worst_a circumstance_n be_v no_o other_o than_o such_o accident_n which_o happen_v also_o many_o time_n to_o very_a good_a christian_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o a_o late_a adversary_n 104._o adversary_n spirit_n of_o mart._n luth._o p._n 104._o who_o have_v write_v a_o book_n on_o purpose_n to_o disparage_v he_o yea_o that_o he_o die_v in_o great_a honour_n as_o well_o as_o pious_o another_o have_v inform_v we_o after_o supper_n say_v thuanus_n immediate_o before_o the_o night_n in_o which_o he_o depart_v when_o he_o be_v ask_v whether_o in_o the_o eternal_a life_n we_o shall_v know_v one_o ather_fw-la he_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v and_o confirm_v it_o by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n as_o many_o strive_v who_o shall_v best_o express_v their_o love_n to_o he_o while_o he_o live_v so_o neither_o by_o death_n can_v they_o be_v draw_v from_o love_v he_o the_o citizen_n of_o mansfield_n contend_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v bury_v with_o they_o because_o that_o be_v his_o native_a soil_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o frederick_n the_o prince_n elector_n prevail_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v carry_v to_o wittenberg_n and_o there_o honourable_o inter_v 2._o inter_v post_fw-la caenani_fw-la proxime_fw-la ante_fw-la noctem_fw-la qua_fw-la decessit_fw-la cum_fw-la rogaretur_fw-la num_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la sempiterna_fw-la vita_fw-la simus_fw-la alter_fw-la alterum_fw-la agnituri_fw-la ita_fw-la esse_fw-la aiebat_fw-la &_o scripturae_fw-la testimoniis_fw-la confirmabat_fw-la ut_fw-la certatim_fw-la eum_fw-la vivum_fw-la etc._n etc._n thuan._n hist_o l._n 2._o and_o indeed_o the_o transcendent_a honour_n that_o be_v do_v to_o his_o memory_n seem_v to_o be_v that_o which_o chief_o provoke_v his_o enemy_n to_o set_v their_o invention_n on_o work_n to_o defame_v he_o the_o cardinal_n be_v next_o instance_n of_o a_o unhappy_a end_n be_v zuinglius_fw-la and_o why_o be_v his_o death_n reckon_v unhappy_a because_o he_o be_v slay_v in_o a_o war_n against_o catholic_n bellarm._n catholic_n zuinglius_fw-la in_o bello_fw-la contra_fw-la catholicos_fw-la trucidatus_fw-la est_fw-la bellarm._n but_o be_v it_o a_o strange_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v kill_v in_o a_o war_n do_v every_o one_o that_o so_o end_v his_o day_n die_v miserable_o if_o so_o how_o many_o million_o have_v the_o pope_n bring_v to_o a_o miserable_a end_n in_o send_v they_o to_o the_o war_n against_o saracen_n and_o heretic_n o_o that_o they_o will_v say_v be_v a_o glorious_a death_n that_o merit_v the_o bright_a crown_n in_o heaven_n but_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v kill_v in_o a_o war_n against_o catholic_n but_o stay_v the_o cardinal_n make_v they_o catholic_n too_o soon_o he_o suppose_v they_o catholic_n before_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v kill_v whereas_o he_o be_v to_o prove_v they_o catholic_n by_o his_o be_v kill_v for_o his_o unhappy_a death_n be_v the_o note_n now_o under_o debate_n by_o which_o they_o be_v to_o be_v know_v to_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o his_o death_n can_v be_v no_o argument_n that_o god_n disapprove_v the_o cause_n in_o which_o he_o die_v be_v evident_a because_o to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o reform_a religion_n which_o they_o hope_v will_v have_v die_v together_o with_o he_o make_v a_o great_a progress_n after_o his_o death_n than_o it_o have_v do_v before_o i_o shall_v speak_v but_o a_o word_n to_o the_o two_o next_o because_o the_o cardinal_n spite_n be_v chief_o against_o calvin_n who_o bring_v up_o the_o rear_n oecolampadius_n say_v bellarmin_n in_o the_o evening_n go_v well_o to_o bed_n and_o in_o the_o morning_n be_v by_o his_o wife_n find_v dead_a
constance_n and_o trent_n that_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a practice_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n 1687._o see_v a_o treatise_n of_o transubstantiation_n by_o one_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n print_a 1687._o one_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v give_v we_o a_o account_n late_o he_o prove_v from_o many_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o be_v not_o ancient_a viz._n from_o peter_n lombard_n from_o suarez_n scotus_n the_o bishop_n of_o cambray_n cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la erasmus_fw-la alphonsus_n à_fw-fr castro_n tonstall_n and_o cassander_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o prove_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o scotus_n ockam_n gabriel_n biel_n and_o cardinal_n cajetan_n and_o after_o all_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v have_v be_v very_o fit_a i_o shall_v here_o have_v make_v a_o end_n have_v consider_v every_o thing_n which_o the_o cardinal_n have_v offer_v as_o to_o this_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o there_o be_v a_o late_a writer_n i_o will_v not_o call_v he_o author_n have_v take_v the_o confidence_n to_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o jewish_a writer_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n vet._n mr._n sclater_n consenf_n vet._n and_o which_o be_v most_o surprise_v of_o all_o he_o quote_v the_o rabbin_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o they_o be_v as_o far_o from_o assert_v as_o he_o be_v from_o understand_v they_o the_o cardinal_n be_v too_o learned_a and_o modest_a to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n but_o this_o gentleman_n advance_v high_a than_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o do_v what_o he_o offer_v speak_v nothing_o so_o loud_o as_o the_o writer_n effrontery_a and_o ignorance_n not_o to_o say_v something_o worse_o though_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o desert_v his_o mother_n the_o church_n of_o england_n yet_o it_o little_a become_v he_o to_o fly_v in_o her_o face_n and_o suborn_v a_o rout_n of_o jew_n against_o she_o his_o discourse_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o i_o shall_v bestow_v very_o little_a time_n and_o pain_n about_o it_o i_o shall_v however_o say_v something_o to_o it_o that_o he_o may_v not_o think_v any_o part_n of_o his_o pamphlet_n unanswered_a and_o do_v hearty_o wish_v he_o repentance_n for_o his_o folly_n and_o that_o he_o may_v learn_v modesty_n for_o the_o future_a and_o for_o my_o better_a proceed_v in_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v do_v these_o thing_n first_o i_o will_v brief_o show_v the_o true_a use_n and_o value_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o jew_n as_o to_o the_o christian_a religion_n second_o i_o shall_v show_v the_o gross_a ignorance_n not_o to_o say_v dishonesty_n of_o this_o writer_n in_o this_o matter_n three_o i_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o jewish_a writer_n be_v so_o far_o from_o serve_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o bear_v witness_n against_o it_o and_o that_o also_o in_o this_o very_a matter_n of_o transubstantiation_n first_o i_o shall_v consider_v how_o far_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v useful_a to_o christianity_n and_o several_a such_o there_o be_v that_o serve_v the_o common_a christianity_n 1._o the_o jew_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o jesus_n that_o he_o wrought_v wonderful_a work_n they_o do_v in_o their_o talmud_n and_o elsewhere_o mention_v several_a of_o those_o name_n which_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o be_v there_o mention_v to_o have_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v place_v there_o this_o be_v a_o useful_a testimony_n and_o serve_v the_o common_a christianity_n and_o save_v we_o the_o labour_n in_o our_o book_n against_o the_o jew_n of_o prove_v these_o matter_n of_o fact._n 2._o they_o be_v also_o good_a witness_n as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v deposit_v in_o their_o hand_n this_o be_v own_v by_o cardinal_n cajetan_n who_o affirm_v that_o this_o be_v one_o advantage_n we_o receive_v from_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n 11._o cajetan_n in_o rom._n xi_o v._o 11._o that_o though_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n themselves_o yet_o they_o approve_v the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o therefore_o those_o book_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v invent_v by_o the_o christian_n to_o have_v serve_v their_o turn_n this_o testimony_n of_o they_o serve_v indeed_o the_o common_a christianity_n but_o be_v so_o far_o from_o serve_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o be_v a_o good_a evidence_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n who_o have_v receive_v those_o book_n for_o canonical_a which_o the_o jew_n never_o receive_v into_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n 3._o they_o be_v good_a witness_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o a_o messiah_n which_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o jewish_a faith._n and_o this_o be_v a_o other_o advantage_n that_o christian_n receive_v as_o cajetan_n well_o observe_v in_o the_o place_n mention_v before_o from_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n 1._o abravenel_n c._n fidei_fw-la c._n 1._o they_o agree_v that_o such_o a_o promise_n be_v make_v and_o that_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v suppose_v either_o a_o forgery_n of_o the_o christian_n or_o a_o vain_a belief_n peculiar_a only_o to_o they_o 4._o they_o be_v good_a witness_n where_o they_o interpret_v those_o text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o the_o messiah_n which_o belong_v to_o that_o matter_n and_o which_o be_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n apply_v to_o that_o purpose_n and_o the_o more_o ancient_a jew_n do_v thus_o the_o chaldee_n paraphrast_n and_o other_o of_o the_o more_o ancient_a jewish_a doctor_n do_v apply_v those_o text_n to_o he_o which_o the_o christian_n also_o understand_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o of_o which_o be_v it_o not_o too_o great_a a_o digression_n it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o produce_v very_o many_o proof_n this_o serve_v the_o common_a christianity_n great_o and_o in_o our_o dispute_n against_o the_o jew_n afford_v we_o very_o great_a advantage_n 5._o nor_o do_v i_o deny_v but_o that_o some_o of_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o have_v be_v always_o believe_v from_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n may_v receive_v some_o confirmation_n from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a jewish_a doctor_n but_o to_o produce_v they_o as_o witness_n as_o this_o writer_n do_v to_o a_o doctrine_n never_o receive_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v the_o most_o extravagant_a thing_n imaginable_a second_o i_o shall_v show_v the_o gross_a ignorance_n not_o to_o say_v dishonesty_n of_o this_o writer_n in_o this_o matter_n his_o author_n from_o who_o he_o borrow_v all_o his_o rabbinical_a learning_n be_v galatinus_n he_o tell_v if_o we_o will_v believe_v he_o that_o he_o be_v always_o account_v a_o very_a learned_a man_n veterum_fw-la preface_n to_o consens_fw-la veterum_fw-la it_o will_v have_v be_v more_o to_o his_o purpose_n to_o have_v vouch_v for_o his_o honesty_n after_o this_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o fit_a of_o devotion_n he_o be_v of_o a_o sudden_a transport_v with_o admiration_n that_o the_o hebrew_n writer_n long_o before_o christ_n time_n take_v mr._n sclater_n word_n for_o that_o shall_v have_v such_o notion_n but_o the_o wind_n blow_v be_v it_o list_v etc._n etc._n he_o may_v have_v stay_v till_o he_o have_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o then_o it_o will_v have_v be_v time_n enough_o to_o admire_v at_o it_o but_o the_o reader_n be_v to_o know_v that_o mr._n sclater_n be_v mighty_o incline_v to_o believe_v in_o this_o matter_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o galatinus_n can_v never_o by_o his_o argument_n have_v prevail_v upon_o he_o this_o appear_v from_o his_o own_o word_n after_o he_o have_v draw_v up_o his_o evidence_n from_o galatinus_n 27._o p._n 27._o he_o tell_v his_o reader_n that_o galatinus_n think_v and_o i_o will_v assure_v you_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o say_v what_o a_o jew_n that_o profess_v himself_o a_o convert_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v real_o think_v these_o prophecy_n and_o interpretation_n he_o may_v have_v call_v they_o dream_n and_o figment_n argumentative_a not_o only_o against_o the_o jew_n but_o a_o confirmation_n also_o of_o the_o christian_a religion_n against_o all_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o you_o ask_v mr._n sclater_n what_o confirm_v he_o in_o this_o belief_n you_o will_v find_v he_o not_o hard_a to_o believe_v i_o be_o confirm_v say_v he_o by_o the_o title-page_n of_o his_o book_n of_o so_o great_a force_n be_v the_o title-page_n of_o galatinus_n his_o book_n with_o mr._n sclater_n of_o
putney_n this_o galatinus_n be_v bear_v a_o jew_n he_o be_v afterward_o a_o convert_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o a_o friar_n and_o pretend_v to_o discover_v something_o in_o the_o hebrew_n doctor_n to_o justify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o which_o he_o have_v betake_v himself_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o learned_a man_n have_v represent_v he_o as_o a_o man_n of_o no_o sincerity_n and_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o his_o falsity_n and_o the_o forgery_n of_o his_o book_n johannes_n mercerus_n a_o man_n of_o singular_a learning_n 11._o j._n mercer_n in_o job_n two_o 11._o and_o scaliger_n a_o great_a judge_n give_v this_o account_n of_o he_o and_o so_o also_o many_o other_o casaubon_n scalig._n epist_n ad_fw-la casaubon_n and_o some_o of_o the_o more_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v sixtus_n senensis_n reprehend_v he_o for_o belie_v pope_n clement_n 5._o joseph_n de_fw-fr voisin_n 2._o biblioth_n st._n l._n 2._o a_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 237._o j._n voisin_n theolog_fw-la judaeorum_fw-la p._n 237._o tax_v he_o of_o ignorance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o best_a character_n i_o find_v of_o he_o be_v that_o he_o be_v a_o plagiary_n or_o thief_n he_o steal_v what_o be_v good_a out_o of_o the_o pugio_fw-la fidei_fw-la of_o raimundus_n fid._n jac._n maussaci_n prolegom_n in_o pug._n fid._n for_o other_o thing_n in_o his_o book_n they_o be_v figment_n and_o forgery_n trifle_n and_o ridiculous_a thing_n his_o testimony_n out_o of_o gale_n razeiah_n and_o zohar_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n jac._n mausacus_fw-la and_o the_o abovenamed_a jos_n de_fw-fr voisin_n author_n against_o who_o mr._n sclater_n can_v except_v proaem_n j._n de_fw-fr vois_fw-fr observat_fw-la in_o proaem_n will_v give_v the_o reader_n this_o account_n of_o he_o in_o a_o word_n he_o be_v a_o convert_v jew_n and_o what_o kind_n of_o man_n they_o have_v prove_v i_o need_v not_o tell_v nor_o can_v i_o think_v of_o that_o matter_n without_o sorrow_n he_o be_v one_o that_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n think_v not_o fit_a to_o quote_v in_o behalf_n of_o their_o church_n one_o that_o be_v condemn_v and_o stigmatise_v by_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o yet_o this_o author_n have_v so_o great_a force_n with_o mr._n sclater_n of_o putney_n that_o he_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o very_a title-page_n of_o his_o book_n i_o shall_v be_v vain_a if_o after_o this_o i_o shall_v be_v operose_fw-la in_o examine_v the_o testimony_n produce_v and_o yet_o i_o can_v but_o reflect_v a_o little_a far_o upon_o the_o stupid_a ignorance_n or_o insincerity_n of_o this_o writer_n 72.16_o r._n sol._n in_o 72.16_o he_o quote_v r._n solomon_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o transubstantiation_n all_o that_o r._n solomon_n say_v to_o his_o purpose_n be_v that_o the_o lxxii_o psalm_n be_v whole_o mean_v of_o the_o messiah_n and_o that_o many_o of_o their_o rabbin_n interpret_v that_o which_o we_o render_v handful_n of_o corn_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o modern_a word_n probable_o from_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o certain_a sweetmeat_n or_o dainty_n in_o the_o day_n of_o messiah_n it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v that_o the_o jew_n fond_o expect_v great_a feast_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o no_o wonder_n that_o many_o of_o the_o rabbin_n shall_v interpret_v these_o word_n of_o those_o dainty_n after_o all_o this_o r._n solomon_n give_v another_o interpretation_n of_o the_o place_n 36._o v._o buxtorf_n synagog_n jud._n l._n 36._o but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o transubstantiation_n but_o be_v all_o that_o as_o it_o will_v with_o what_o face_n can_v he_o affirm_v that_o he_o produce_v several_a jewish_a master_n when_o he_o produce_v not_o one_o 21._o conssens_n vet._n p_o 21._o and_o yet_o he_o confident_o attempt_v to_o name_v they_o though_o he_o bewray_v his_o great_a ignorance_n in_o it_o he_o say_v he_o produce_v the_o book_n siphre_n r._n ira_n midra_n coheleth_n where_o he_o reckon_v midras_n coheleth_n which_o be_v but_o the_o title_n of_o one_o book_n viz._n a_o commentary_n of_o ecclesiaste_n for_o two_o rabbin_n this_o i_o dare_v say_v be_v mr._n sclater_n own_o he_o can_v not_o borrow_v it_o from_o the_o learned_a galatinus_n mr._n sclater_n add_v that_o he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n in_o that_o psalm_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o right_o design_v than_o the_o prelate_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n in_o who_o this_o scripture_n be_v then_o fulfil_v and_o verify_v when_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v elevate_v now_o there_o be_v not_o one_o syllable_n in_o r._n solomon_n of_o siphre_n r._n ira_n midras_n cohele_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o prelate_n all_o this_o be_v mr._n sclater_n galatinus_n himself_o affirm_v no_o such_o thing_n of_o r._n solomon_n and_o therefore_o if_o by_o he_o produce_v 37._o pag._n 21._o l._n 37._o mr._n sclater_n mean_v r._n solomon_n as_o any_o reader_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o think_v he_o wrong_v he_o for_o in_o truth_n he_o quote_v none_o of_o those_o author_n though_o galatinus_n do_v for_o his_o first_o quotation_n out_o of_o r._n moses_n haddurshan_n or_o the_o preacher_n if_o we_o shall_v allow_v it_o to_o be_v true_o cite_v yet_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n will_v find_v it_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o what_o follow_v be_v too_o transparent_a to_o gain_v belief_n beside_o that_o a_o learned_a society_n of_o hebrician_n be_v many_o year_n ago_o consult_v about_o a_o quotation_n of_o galatinus_n 394._o dr._n morton_n catholic_n appeal_n p._n 394._o out_o of_o that_o r._n moses_n who_o give_v it_o under_o their_o hand_n that_o they_o find_v in_o the_o place_n quote_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o his_o citation_n out_o of_o mechilta_n though_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o it_o to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o if_o there_o have_v 22._o p._n 22._o he_o ought_v to_o have_v refer_v to_o the_o page_n or_o leaf_n of_o that_o book_n if_o he_o have_v do_v sincere_o for_o r._n cahanah_n who_o he_o say_v be_v bear_v before_o christ_n 23._o p._n 23._o we_o have_v so_o little_a evidence_n of_o that_o that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o there_o ever_o be_v any_o such_o writer_n and_o for_o r._n johai_n there_o be_v no_o such_o author_n find_v 24._o p._n 24._o nor_o mention_v by_o any_o but_o galatinus_n for_o the_o fable_n of_o elias_n his_o be_v present_a at_o circumcision_n it_o be_v a_o jewish_a dream_n the_o use_n he_o make_v of_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a 24._o p._n 24._o and_o the_o testimony_n of_o r._n judas_n a_o mere_a figment_n for_o the_o gale_n razia_n cite_v by_o he_o and_o what_o he_o cite_v from_o rabbenu_fw-fr hakkodesh_a by_o who_o he_o shall_v mean_v the_o compiler_n of_o the_o jewish_a misna_n they_o be_v mere_a counterfeit_n and_o mr._n sclater_n be_v something_o unlucky_a 25._o p._n 25._o for_o he_o in_o his_o book_n instead_o of_o gale_n have_v gate_n and_o in_o his_o errata_fw-la he_o have_v it_o gaize_v iii_o i_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o jewish_a writer_n be_v so_o far_o from_o serve_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o their_o confession_n that_o they_o bear_v witness_n against_o it_o and_o that_o also_o in_o this_o very_a business_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o here_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o enlarge_v and_o to_o bring_v abundant_a proof_n from_o author_n know_v and_o easy_o to_o be_v procure_v and_o from_o such_o as_o have_v the_o great_a reputation_n among_o the_o jew_n the_o ancient_a jew_n be_v on_o our_o side_n as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n decalogo_fw-la joseph_n antiq._n jud._n l._n iii._o c._n 4._o philo_n jud._n de_fw-la decalogo_fw-la i_o can_v easy_o prove_v both_o from_o josepus_n and_o philo_n the_o jew_n that_o they_o be_v against_o that_o distribution_n of_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o decalogue_n which_o obtain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o with_o we_o do_v reckon_v the_o commandment_n against_o image_n to_o be_v a_o distinct_a precept_n and_o the_o second_o in_o number_n the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o pray_v to_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n 128._o nizach_n vet._n p._n 128._o the_o jew_n except_v against_o 16._o r._n isaac_n p._n 383._o lipman_n p._n 16._o the_o latter_a of_o which_o be_v against_o the_o very_a letter_n of_o their_o law._n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n 196._o lipman_n be_v nizachon_n p._n 25._o nizach_n vet._n p._n 23_o 42_o 43_o 196._o the_o practice_n among_o christian_n of_o cross_v themselves_o when_o it_o thunder_v the_o christen_n of_o bell_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o caelibacy_n of_o priest_n the_o vow_a caelibacy_n of_o monk_n and_o nun_n 345._o r._n isaac_n chizuk_n emuna_n p._n 345._o as_o well_o as_o
from_o be_v dazzle_v at_o the_o sight_n that_o they_o be_v no_o more_o affect_v than_o if_o i_o have_v look_v on_o a_o piece_n of_o green_a silk_n but_o i_o doubt_v he_o will_v censure_v they_o very_o hardly_o for_o it_o and_o think_v they_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o malignant_a cavaleerish_v eye_n i_o can_v help_v that_o but_o whatever_o eye_n they_o be_v since_o i_o have_v be_v able_a to_o hold_v they_o open_v so_o long_o against_o the_o glare_a imaginary_a splendour_n of_o these_o these_o triumphant_a note_n i_o will_v venture_v to_o draw_v out_o the_o whole_a train_n once_o more_o and_o give_v a_o little_a remark_n upon_o every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o pass_v by_o 1._o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n this_o be_v a_o note_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o usurp_v by_o every_o bold_a pretender_n but_o till_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v join_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o name_n alone_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o empty_a and_o insignificant_a sound_n 2._o antiquity_n i_o shall_v not_o here_o mention_v the_o antiquity_n of_o some_o error_n nor_o that_o there_o be_v many_o church_n in_o the_o world_n before_o there_o be_v any_o at_o rome_n but_o will_v free_o confess_v that_o that_o have_v be_v ancient_a enough_o if_o it_o have_v preserve_v that_o doctrine_n in_o its_o purity_n which_o it_o receive_v at_o the_o first_o but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o addition_n she_o have_v make_v unto_o that_o concern_v infallibility_n image_n purgatory_n and_o the_o like_a can_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v of_o ancient_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n nay_o many_o of_o their_o present_a tenant_n be_v never_o declare_v necessary_a till_o the_o last_o age_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v now_o constitute_v can_v be_v esteem_v no_o old_a than_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o be_v about_o forty_o year_n young_a than_o the_o reformation_n 3._o duration_n by_o this_o the_o cardinal_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o his_o true_a church_n have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o shall_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o christianity_n the_o first_o we_o deny_v the_o second_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n we_o be_v sure_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v change_v already_o from_o what_o it_o be_v and_o we_o hope_v and_o believe_v that_o it_o will_v be_v change_v again_o from_o what_o it_o be_v and_o then_o what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o duration_n they_o boast_v of_o if_o they_o shall_v ever_o reform_v themselves_o from_o those_o error_n and_o abuse_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o among_o they_o as_o have_v be_v often_o attempt_v and_o a_o long_a time_n most_o earnest_o desire_v by_o many_o of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o impartial_a of_o their_o own_o communion_n so_o that_o grant_v this_o to_o be_v a_o note_n it_o will_v make_v against_o they_o both_o way_n for_o what_o be_v past_a we_o know_v what_o alteration_n have_v be_v make_v by_o they_o and_o they_o can_v never_o be_v secure_v against_o other_o that_o may_v happen_v hereafter_o 4._o amplitude_n or_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o believer_n this_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v make_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o time_n be_v once_o that_o christ_n flock_n be_v a_o little_a flock_n 1.15_o act_n 1.15_o and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o name_n together_o be_v but_o about_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o and_o afterward_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n have_v almost_o overspread_v the_o face_n of_o christendom_n insomuch_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v think_v to_o be_v against_o athanasius_n and_o athanasius_n against_o the_o whole_a world._n or_o shall_v we_o let_v it_o pass_v for_o a_o note_n they_o can_v gain_v but_o little_a by_o it_o for_o they_o be_v infinite_o exceed_v in_o multitude_n not_o only_o by_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n but_o by_o christian_n of_o other_o denomination_n 5._o succession_n of_o bishop_n how_o far_o this_o may_v be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n i_o need_v not_o dispute_v but_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n they_o of_o rome_n be_v wont_v to_o glory_n in_o be_v manifest_o false_a for_o beside_o the_o long_a vacance_n that_o have_v sometime_o happen_v and_o the_o many_o schism_n they_o have_v have_v when_o two_o or_o more_o have_v pretend_v to_o the_o papacy_n and_o no_o man_n can_v determine_v who_o have_v the_o right_n which_o must_v make_v it_o dubious_a the_o confess_v heretic_n that_o have_v possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o infallible_a chair_n must_v quite_o cut_v off_o at_o least_o interrupt_v the_o succession_n or_o if_o they_o have_v it_o notwithstanding_o this_o or_o any_o other_o objection_n that_o may_v be_v make_v we_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v plead_v the_o same_o 6._o agreement_n in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v a_o good_a note_n indeed_o if_o they_o mean_v the_o true_o primitive_a church_n for_o that_o agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o then_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o affirm_v that_o their_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n their_o half-communion_n their_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o now_o receive_v be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n and_o belief_n of_o that_o primitive_a church_n 7._o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o head._n of_o this_o they_o be_v continual_o make_v their_o brag_v but_o the_o many_o and_o violent_a contention_n that_o have_v often_o be_v betwixt_o the_o several_a pretender_n to_o the_o papal_a dignity_n and_o the_o endless_a feud_n and_o animosity_n that_o be_v keep_v up_o among_o they_o about_o many_o controvert_v point_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o their_o church_n have_v be_v rend_v and_o tear_v with_o faction_n and_o intestine_a division_n as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o society_n or_o if_o they_o be_v as_o firm_o unite_v as_o they_o pretend_v it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o other_o combination_n of_o man_n have_v be_v in_o know_v and_o wicked_a error_n 8._o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n for_o they_o general_o assert_v as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v here_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n maintain_v nothing_o that_o be_v false_a either_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v this_o there_o may_v be_v some_o reason_n indeed_o that_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v esteem_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n as_o she_o have_v be_v wont_a of_o late_a to_o style_v herself_o but_o since_o the_o power_n of_o depose_v prince_n have_v be_v open_o assume_v and_o frequent_o practise_v and_o never_o yet_o condemn_v by_o any_o either_o pope_n or_o council_n since_o the_o doctrine_n of_o aequivocation_n and_o many_o other_o absurd_a and_o impious_a opinion_n be_v teach_v by_o their_o casuist_n and_o make_v use_v of_o by_o their_o confessor_n in_o direct_v the_o conscience_n of_o their_o penitent_n and_o since_o these_o and_o many_o more_o very_a dangerous_a error_n do_v not_o only_o escape_v without_o a_o censure_n but_o be_v approve_v of_o and_o encourage_v by_o their_o governor_n i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o they_o and_o their_o church_n can_v possible_o be_v excuse_v from_o the_o gild_n of_o they_o 9_o the_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n here_o we_o be_v tell_v of_o the_o wonderful_a success_n they_o have_v have_v in_o the_o propagation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o conversion_n that_o have_v be_v make_v of_o whole_a nation_n and_o suppose_v it_o be_v as_o they_o say_v yet_o heresy_n and_o infidelity_n have_v often_o have_v as_o great_a and_o swift_a a_o progress_n in_o the_o world_n as_o any_o that_o their_o doctrine_n can_v boast_v of_o and_o consider_v the_o pravity_n and_o corruption_n of_o human_a nature_n it_o be_v not_o strange_a that_o the_o most_o gross_a and_o pernicious_a error_n shall_v be_v more_o ready_o receive_v and_o spread_v themselves_o fast_o than_o the_o most_o divine_a and_o sacred_a truth_n 10._o holiness_n of_o life_n this_o be_v indeed_o the_o most_o real_a commendation_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o i_o will_v not_o go_v about_o to_o rob_v they_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o but_o than_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o meet_v philosopher_n and_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n and_o many_o of_o those_o who_o they_o account_v modern_a heretic_n have_v be_v of_o a_o very_a strict_a and_o unblamable_a conversation_n and_o divers_a of_o their_o pope_n and_o other_o ecclesiastic_n of_o the_o great_a eminency_n of_o place_n have_v be_v very_o infamous_a for_o all_o sort_n of_o wickedness_n and_o debauchery_n and_o their_o very_a religious_a order_n have_v be_v often_o complain_v of_o for_o the_o neglect_n of_o their_o discipline_n and_o looseness_n of_o their_o life_n as_o be_v abundant_o testify_v by_o their_o